Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n believe_v faith_n infallibility_n 5,890 5 11.4885 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A27069 Which is the true church? the whole Christian world, as headed only by Christ ... or, the Pope of Rome and his subjects as such? : in three parts ... / by Richard Baxter ... Baxter, Richard, 1615-1691. 1679 (1679) Wing B1453; ESTC R1003 229,673 156

There are 45 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

church_n can_v or_o do_v not_o err_v in_o tell_v i_o what_o be_v god_n revelation_n before_o i_o can_v know_v or_o believe_v any_o of_o his_o revelation_n if_o they_o mean_v that_o this_o act_n of_o faith_n must_v go_v first_o before_o i_o can_v have_v any_o other_o why_o may_v i_o not_o know_v and_o believe_v other_o article_n of_o faith_n without_o the_o divine_a belief_n of_o the_o church_n authority_n or_o infallibility_n as_o i_o may_v believe_v this_o one_o god_n have_v reveal_v that_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a or_o true_a in_o tell_v i_o what_o i_o must_v believe_v if_o one_o article_n may_v be_v believe_v without_o that_o motive_n and_o sure_o it_o be_v not_o believe_v before_o it_o be_v believe_v why_o not_o other_o as_o well_o as_o that_o 3._o and_o which_o way_n or_o by_o what_o revelation_n do_v god_n confer_v this_o infallibility_n on_o the_o church_n if_o by_o scripture_n it_o be_v suppose_v that_o yet_o you_o know_v not_o what_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n or_o believe_v it_o not_o to_o be_v true_a till_o you_o have_v first_o believe_v the_o church_n veracity_n therefore_o it_o can_v be_v that_o way_n if_o by_o verbal_a tradition_n it_o be_v equal_o suppose_v that_o you_o know_v not_o that_o tradition_n to_o be_v god_n word_n and_o true_a before_o you_o know_v the_o church_n veracity_n that_o tell_v you_o so_o so_o that_o the_o question_n how_o i_o must_v believe_v the_o church_n veracity_n herein_o by_o what_o divine_a revelation_n before_o i_o can_v believe_v any_o other_o revelation_n be_v still_o unanswered_a and_o answerable_a only_o by_o palpable_a contradiction_n but_o be_v it_o not_o for_o interpret_n he_o contrary_n to_o his_o company_n i_o shall_v by_o his_o word_n here_o 17._o judge_v that_o it_o be_v no_o divine_a faith_n of_o the_o church_n veracity_n which_o he_o make_v pre-requisite_a to_o all_o other_o act_n of_o faith_n but_o it_o be_v prudential_n motive_n of_o cre●…bility_n which_o must_v draw_v he_o to_o afford_v credit_n to_o that_o authority_n as_o derive_v from_o god_n which_o commend_v to_o he_o the_o bible_n as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n now_o that_o can_v be_v no_o other_o than_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n ans._n mark_v reader_n it_o can_v be_v no_o other_o than_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n which_o must_v be_v the_o prudential_a motive_n to_o credit_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n as_o derive_v from_o god_n so_o the_o church_n authority_n must_v be_v first_o credit_v that_o he_o may_v credit_v it_o or_o else_o the_o authority_n not_o credit_v must_v move_v he_o to_o credit_v it_o which_o be_v all_o contradiction_n unless_o he_o mean_v that_o the_o church_n authority_n credit_v by_o a_o humane_a faith_n or_o by_o some_o notify_n or_o conjectural_a evidence_n beside_o divine_a revelation_n must_v move_v he_o to_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v authorize_v by_o god_n when_o they_o have_v tell_v we_o whether_o that_o first_o credit_n give_v to_o the_o church_n have_v any_o certainty_n for_o its_o object_n and_o also_o what_o and_o whence_o that_o certainty_n be_v we_o shall_v know_v what_o to_o say_v to_o they_o knot_n against_o chillingworth_n be_v fain_o tosay_v that_o it_o be_v the_o church_n own_o miracle_n by_o which_o it_o be_v know_v to_o have_v divine_a authority_n before_o we_o can_v believe_v any_o word_n of_o god_n and_o so_o no_o man_n can_v be_v sure_a that_o god_n word_n be_v his_o word_n and_o true_a till_o he_o be_v first_o sure_a that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v wrought_v such_o miracle_n as_o prove_v its_o veracity_n as_o from_o god_n which_o will_v require_v in_o the_o catechumene_fw-la so_o much_o acquaintance_n with_o historical_a legend_n which_o the_o more_o he_o read_v they_o the_o less_o he_o will_v believe_v they_o as_o will_v make_v it_o a_o far_o long_o and_o more_o uncertain_a way_n to_o become_v a_o christian_n than_o better_a teacher_n have_v of_o old_a make_v use_n of_o and_o 2._o it_o seem_v when_o all_o be_v do_v that_o he_o take_v this_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n but_o for_o a_o prudential_a motive_n but_o be_v it_o certain_a or_o uncertain_a if_o uncertain_a so_o will_v all_o be_v that_o be_v build_v upon_o it_o if_o certain_a again_o tell_v we_o by_o what_o ascertain_v evidence_n reader_n it_o be_v the_o crooked_a way_n into_o which_o byassing-interest_n have_v tempt_v these_o man_n to_o lead_v poor_a soul_n which_o be_v thus_o perplex_v and_o confound_v 18._o how_o plain_a and_o sure_o a_o way_n god_n have_v prescribe_v we_o i_o have_v tell_v you_o in_o a_o small_a tractate_n call_v the_o certainty_n of_o christianity_n without_o popery_n in_o short_a it_o be_v possible_a if_o a_o man_n never_o hear_v but_o one_o sermon_n which_o mention_v not_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n or_o find_v a_o bible_n on_o the_o highway_n and_o read_v it_o that_o he_o may_v see_v that_o evidence_n in_o it_o that_o may_v persuade_v he_o save_o to_o believe_v through_o grace_n that_o it_o true_o affirm_v itself_o to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o the_o ordinary_a method_n for_o most_o rational_a certainty_n be_v to_o have_v first_o historical_n ascertain_v evidence_n of_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n viz._n that_o this_o book_n be_v indeed_o write_v and_o these_o miracle_n and_o other_o thing_n do_v as_o it_o affirm_v or_o first_o perhaps_o that_o this_o baptismal_a covenant_n lord_n prayer_n creed_n and_o decalogue_n have_v be_v deliver_v down_o from_o the_o first_o witness_n of_o christ_n and_o miracle_n wrought_v to_o confirm_v the_o gospel_n which_o be_v also_o write_v at_o large_a in_o that_o book_n this_o we_o have_v far_o great_a historical_a certainty_n of_o than_o the_o pretend_a authority_n of_o a_o judging-church_n of_o rome_n even_o the_o infallible_a testimony_n of_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n and_o as_o to_o the_o essential_o baptism_n the_o creed_n etc._n etc._n of_o heretic_n infidel_n and_o heathen_n which_o i_o have_v open_v at_o large_a in_o a_o book_n call_v the_o reason_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o another_o call_v the_o unreasonableness_n of_o infidelity_n and_o in_o other_o write_n and_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n with_o the_o book_n be_v thus_o certain_o bring_v down_o to_o we_o as_o the_o statute_n of_o the_o land_n be_v we_o then_o know_v the_o gospel_n and_o that_o book_n to_o be_v of_o god_n by_o all_o those_o evidence_n which_o in_o the_o foresay_a treatise_n i_o have_v open_v at_o large_a and_o more_o brief_o in_o a_o treatise_n call_v the_o life_n of_o faith_n the_o sum_n of_o which_o be_v the_o holy_a spirit_n as_o christ_n agent_n advocate_n and_o witness_v in_o his_o work_n of_o divine_a power_n wisdom_n and_o goodness_n or_o love_n print_v first_o on_o christ_n himself_o his_o life_n and_o doctrine_n and_o then_o on_o the_o apostle_n their_o work_n and_o doctrine_n and_o then_o on_o all_o sanctify_a believer_n in_o all_o age_n and_o especial_o on_o ourselves_o beside_o his_o antecedent_n prophecy_v pag._n 16._o he_o again_o pretend_v that_o he_o need_v not_o name_v the_o necessary_a article_n of_o faith_n because_o i_o myself_o say_v they_o must_v be_v the_o essential_o and_o it_o be_v suppose_v i_o understand_v my_o own_o term_n 19_o ans._n a_o candid_a disputant_n the_o light_n follow_v he_o while_o he_o fly_v from_o it_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o if_o i_o know_v my_o own_o meaning_n i_o therefore_o know_v you_o and_o if_o i_o know_v which_o be_v the_o essential_o that_o therefore_o you_o know_v they_o and_o be_v of_o the_o same_o mind_n pag._n 17._o the_o man_n will_v make_v i_o believe_v that_o i_o speak_v not_o true_a divinity_n when_o i_o say_v that_o divine_a and_o humane_a faith_n may_v be_v conjunct_a when_o the_o testimony_n be_v so_o conjunct_a as_o that_o we_o be_v sure_a 20._o that_o it_o be_v god_n that_o speak_v by_o man_n who_o be_v therefore_o credible_a because_o god_n infallible_o guide_v and_o inspire_v he_o he_o will_v make_v you_o believe_v that_o i_o be_o singular_a and_o erroneous_a here_o ans._n and_o why_o he_o say_v that_o will_v make_v christian_a faith_n partly_o humane_a but_o 1._o when_o i_o talk_v but_o of_o two_o faith_n conjunct_a what_o if_o i_o call_v the_o former_a divine_a faith_n only_o the_o christian_a faith_n may_v not_o a_o humane_a yet_o be_v conjunct_a with_o the_o christian_a 2._o but_o word_n must_v be_v examine_v if_o christian_a faith_n be_v so_o call_v from_o the_o object_n than_o christ_n and_o not_o his_o apostle_n be_v the_o reason_n of_o the_o name_n material_o we_o be_v call_v christian_n for_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o not_o for_o believe_v in_o they_o 2._o if_o christian_a faith_n be_v take_v subjective_o it_o be_v humane_a faith_n for_o man_n be_v the_o subject_n of_o it_o 3._o if_o christian_a faith_n be_v
tergiversation_n what_o sort_n of_o disputant_n shall_v blush_v will_v you_o think_v after_o all_o this_o what_o his_o answer_n be_v you_o shall_v have_v it_o in_o his_o own_o word_n and_o know_v you_o not_o that_o divine_n be_v divide_v what_o be_v the_o point_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v explicit_o necessitate_v medii_fw-la some_o and_o those_o the_o more_o ancient_a hold_v that_o the_o explicit_a belief_n of_o god_n of_o the_o whole_a trinity_n of_o christ_n his_o passion_n ☞_o resurrection_n etc._n etc._n be_v necessary_a necessitate_v medii_fw-la other_o among_o the_o recentior_n that_o no_o more_o than_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o deity_n and_o that_o he_o be_v a_o rewarder_n of_o our_o work_n be_v absolute_o necessary_a with_o that_o necessity_n to_o be_v explicit_o believe_v now_o to_o answer_v your_o question_n what_o it_o be_v whereby_o our_o church-member_n be_v know_v i_o answer_v that_o 1._o all_o those_o who_o be_v baptize_v and_o believe_v all_o the_o point_n of_o our_o faith_n explicit_o if_o any_o such_o be_v to_o be_v find_v be_v undoubted_a member_n of_o our_o church_n 2._o all_o those_o who_o believe_v explicit_o all_o the_o artiale_n whatever_o belong_v to_o they_o in_o particular_a by_o reason_n of_o their_o respective_a office_n in_o the_o church_n 3._o those_o who_o so_o believe_v all_o thing_n necessary_a necessitate_v medii_fw-la or_o necessitate_v praecepti_fw-la extend_v to_o all_o adulti_fw-la 4_o all_z those_o who_o believe_v in_o that_o manner_n all_o thing_n hold_v necessary_a necessitate_v medii_fw-la according_a to_o the_o first_o opinion_n of_o the_o more_o ancient_a doctor_n 5._o it_o be_v probable_a though_o not_o altogether_o so_o certain_a as_o the_o former_a that_o such_o as_o believe_v explicit_o the_o deity_n and_o that_o he_o be_v a_o rewarder_n of_o our_o work_n and_o the_o rest_n implicit_o as_o contain_v in_o confuso_fw-la in_o that_o be_v part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n baptism_n suppose_v 〈◊〉_d now●…_n see_v all_o those_o in_o my_o four_o first_o number_n which_o comprehend_v almost_o all_o christian_n be_v certain_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n we_o have_v a_o sufficient_a certain_o of_o a_o determinate_a church_n consist_v at_o least_o of_o these_o by_o reason_n whereof_o our_o church_n have_v a_o visible_a consistency_n those_o of_o the_o five_o rank_n though_o not_o so_o certain_a not_o take_v away_o the_o certainty_n of_o the_o former_a see_v you_o not_o by_o this_o discourse_n that_o we_o answer_v sufficient_o to_o your_o question_n by_o tell_v which_o be_v undoubted_a member_n ans._n reader_n how_o sad_a be_v the_o case_n of_o mankind_n when_o such_o a_o talker_n as_o this_o shall_v go_v for_o a_o champion_n and_o prevail_v with_o silly_a soul_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o salvation_n against_o common_a reason_n and_o the_o notice_n of_o christianity_n mark_v here_o 1._o he_o ask_v i_o know_v you_o not_o that_o divine_n be_v divide_v yes_o and_o i_o know_v how_o lamentable_o you_o have_v divide_v the_o christian_a world_n see_v reader_n what_o be_v the_o unity_n and_o concord_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n not_o only_o the_o laity_n but_o their_o divine_n be_v divide_v about_o the_o very_a essence_n of_o a_o christian_a and_o their_o church_n these_o be_v the_o man_n that_o cry_v up_o unity_n as_o a_o mark_n of_o their_o church_n and_o cry_v out_o of_o we_o as_o schismatic_n as_o if_o we_o be_v all_o crumble_v into_o dust_n by_o sect_n because_o we_o differ_v about_o some_o small_a circumstance_n of_o worship_n or_o exposition_n of_o some_o impose_v word_n of_o man_n or_o of_o some_o difficult_a point_n of_o no_o flat_a necessity_n 2._o note_v here_o also_o the_o infallibility_n of_o their_o church_n and_o what_o a_o privilege_n they_o have_v in_o have_v a_o judge_n of_o controversy_n while_o their_o doctor_n be_v divide_v on_o the_o question_n what_o a_o christian_a be_v and_o pope_n and_o council_n dare_v not_o or_o can_v or_o will_v not_o determinate_a what_o make_v a_o christian_a or_o member_n of_o their_o church_n o_o happy_a infallible_a judge_n of_o controversy_n 3._o note_v also_o the_o extent_n of_o the_o roman_a faith_n 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v so_o big_a as_o that_o it_o and_o its_o circumstance_n fill_v large_a volume_n call_v the_o council_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v no_o article_n of_o their_o faith_n what_o christianity_n be_v or_o what_o must_v constitute_v a_o member_n of_o their_o church_n but_o this_o be_v leave_v at_o liberty_n to_o dispute_n 4._o note_v also_o the_o great_a partiality_n of_o the_o papist_n the_o doctor_n may_v be_v divide_v about_o the_o essence_n of_o christianity_n and_o may_v deny_v faith_n in_o christ_n to_o be_v particular_o necessary_a to_o a_o christian._n but_o if_o a_o man_n believe_v not_o that_o rome_n be_v the_o mistress_n of_o all_o church_n and_o the_o pope_n the_o universal_a governourr_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n when_o the_o priest_n have_v consecrate_v he_o be_v to_o be_v exterminate_v or_o burn_v as_o a_o heretic_n and_o prince_n depose_v that_o will_v not_o execute_v it_o 5._o note_v here_o that_o here_o be_v not_o a_o word_n in_o all_o this_o of_o believe_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v the_o governor_n of_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n either_o they_o take_v this_o to_o be_v essential_a to_o a_o member_n of_o their_o church_n or_o not_o if_o they_o do_v be_v they_o not_o juggler_n and_o ashamed_a of_o their_o faith_n when_o they_o thus_o hide_v it_o if_o not_o what_o be_v become_v of_o their_o sectarian_n church_n and_o all_o their_o accusation_n and_o condemnation_n of_o most_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n who_o believe_v no_o such_o office_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o what_o a_o society_n be_v that_o where_o the_o reception_n of_o the_o pars_fw-la imperans_fw-la be_v not_o necessary_a to_o every_o subject_n 6._o note_v here_o whether_o the_o roman_a religion_n be_v mutable_a or_o not_o and_o whether_o constancy_n be_v a_o note_n of_o their_o verity_n when_o he_o profess_v that_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n and_o the_o recentior_n or_o novelist_n do_v differ_v about_o the_o very_a essence_n of_o christianity_n have_v these_o recentior_n antiquity_n to_o boast_v of_o 7._o note_v also_o from_o hence_o the_o validity_n of_o their_o common_a argument_n from_o tradition_n as_o if_o all_o their_o church_n be_v now_o and_o always_o of_o one_o mind_n when_o at_o present_a they_o be_v divide_v about_o the_o essence_n of_o christianity_n and_o the_o recentior_n forsake_v the_o ancient_n but_o have_v these_o ancient_n tradition_n for_o their_o opinion_n or_o not_o if_o they_o have_v how_o come_v the_o recentior_n to_o forsake_v it_o if_o not_o what_o a_o insufficient_a thing_n be_v your_o tradition_n that_o have_v not_o tell_v you_o what_o a_o christian_a or_o church-member_n be_v and_o yet_o we_o must_v take_v this_o tradition_n as_o sufficient_a to_o tell_v we_o what_o order_n and_o ceremony_n peter_n settle_v at_o rome_n 8._o i_o pray_v you_o note_v that_o even_o their_o ancient_a doctor_n opinion_n which_o be_v all_o that_o must_v keep_v his_o cause_n from_o utter_a shame_n he_o dare_v not_o describe_v in_o answer_n to_o my_o question_n but_o have_v name_v five_o word_n god_n the_o whole_a trinity_n christ_n his_o passion_n and_o resurrection_n he_o crafty_o shut_v it_o up_o with_o a_o e●…_n cetera_fw-la so_o that_o if_o you_o suppose_v he_o to_o say_v that_o these_o five_o thing_n be_v all_o that_o they_o require_v he_o may_v deny_v it_o because_o he_o add_v a_o etc._n etc._n if_o you_o ask_v what_o be_v the_o ●…est_n you_o be_v where_o we_o begin_v a_o etc._n etc._n be_v all_o the_o answer_n 9_o well_o let_v we_o peruse_v his_o five_o particular_a sort_n of_o member_n distinct_o which_o make_v up_o their_o church_n and_o try_v 〈◊〉_d be_v the_o m●…ey_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o 〈◊〉_d or_o whether_o the_o reader_n will_v not_o wonder_v that_o such_o train_a disputer_n have_v no_o more_o to_o say_v nor_o a_o more_o plausible_a sort_n of_o fraud_n to_o use_v 1._o his_o first_o sort_n of_o visible_a member_n be_v all_z those_o that_o be_v baptize_v and_o believe_v explicit_o all_o the_o point_n of_o our_o faith_n if_o any_o such_o be_v to_o be_v find_v ans._n be_v not_o this_o a_o modest_a parenthesis_n whether_o any_o such_o be_v to_o be_v find_v he_o seem_v uncertain_a and_o yet_o say_v these_o be_v the_o undoubted_a member_n of_o our_o church_n the_o undoubted_a member_n when_o he_o doubt_v himself_o whether_o any_o such_o be_v to_o be_v find_v and_o can_v we_o find_v the_o church_n by_o they_o then_o and_o no_o wonder_n that_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v for_o note_n reader_n that_o he_o never_o tell_v you_o here_o yet_o at_o all_o what_o the_o faith_n of_o their_o church_n be_v but_o only_o that_o if_o any_o have_v it_o all_o they_o
which_o they_o may_v short_o expect_v by_o the_o persuasion_n of_o some_o i_o have_v attempt_v to_o make_v this_o return_n to_o this_o one_o reply_n which_o be_v all_o that_o ever_o they_o publish_v against_o i_o that_o i_o know_v of_o and_o because_o true_a order_n require_v first_o that_o we_o understand_v each_o other_o term_n i_o must_v begin_v with_o that_o though_o it_o be_v the_o last_o thing_n in_o his_o book_n in_o which_o you_o will_v see_v what_o a_o sandy_a fabric_n it_o be_v which_o be_v adorn_v by_o they_o with_o the_o great_a epithet_n of_o apostolical_a ancient_a universal_a infallible_a and_o how_o little_a they_o know_v or_o can_v make_v other_o know_v what_o it_o be_v of_o which_o they_o do_v dispute_v or_o what_o that_o church_n be_v to_o which_o so_o many_o hundred_o thousand_o christian_n call_v by_o they_o heretic_n have_v be_v sacrifice_v by_o sword_n and_o flame_n in_o the_o second_o part_n i_o defend_v the_o visibility_n of_o the_o church_n which_o the_o protestant_n be_v member_n of_o against_o his_o vain_a objection_n and_o in_o the_o three_o part_n i_o defend_v those_o additional_a argument_n by_o which_o i_o prove_v it_o in_o all_o which_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o the_o impartial_a understand_a reader_n may_v see_v that_o their_o terrestrial_a universal_a monarchy_n and_o their_o condemnation_n of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v contrary_a to_o sense_n reason_n tradition_n consent_n antiquity_n and_o scripture_n and_o that_o their_o kingdom_n stand_v but_o on_o three_o leg_n ignorance_n and_o deceit_n worldly_a interest_n and_o the_o sword_n and_o violence_n and_o when_o these_o and_o especial_o the_o sword_n of_o prince_n do_v cease_v to_o uphold_v it_o it_o will_v present_o die_v and_o come_v to_o nothing_o for_o though_o melchior_n canus_n say_v that_o the_o roman_a privilege_n as_o he_o call_v they_o have_v stand_v though_o the_o great_a number_n of_o bishop_n and_o church_n and_o the_o arm_n of_o emperor_n have_v be_v against_o they_o yet_o be_v it_o uphold_v against_o all_o these_o by_o no_o better_a mean_n than_o those_o aforesaid_a the_o great_a number_n of_o church_n and_o bishop_n viz._n of_o east_n and_o south_n be_v against_o they_o and_o all_o the_o other_o four_o patriarchates_n renounce_v they_o as_o they_o do_v to_o this_o day_n they_o lay_v the_o fast_a hold_n of_o the_o west_n and_o by_o master_v italy_n flatter_v and_o advance_v france_n promise_v kingdom_n and_o empire_n to_o their_o adherent_n threaten_v the_o deposition_n of_o other_o divide_v germany_n and_o all_o europe_n that_o many_o may_v need_v the_o pope_n and_o few_o be_v able_a to_o resist_v he_o and_o by_o keep_v man_n ignorant_a that_o they_o may_v be_v capable_a of_o their_o government_n by_o these_o mean_v they_o overcome_v the_o arm_n of_o emperor_n and_o make_v they_o their_o subject_n who_o subject_n they_o have_v be_v if_o there_o be_v nothing_o else_o to_o satisfy_v the_o reader_n against_o popery_n but_o these_o follow_a particular_n it_o be_v a_o shame_n to_o humane_a nature_n to_o receive_v it_o 1._o the_o natural_a incapacity_n of_o one_o man_n to_o be_v a_o church-monarch_n ☞_o any_o more_o than_o to_o be_v a_o civil_a monarch_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n 2._o that_o bellarmine_n confess_v that_o the_o pope_n succee_v not_o peter_n as_o a_o apostle_n but_o as_o a_o universal_a pastor_n but_o peter_n never_o have_v any_o high_a office_n than_o to_o be_v the_o first_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 12._o 28._o god_n have_v set_v in_o the_o church_n first_o apoctles_o not_o first_o a_o vice-christ_n 3._o that_o they_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o fide_fw-la that_o the_o pope_n be_v peter_n successor_n 4._o that_o none_o of_o the_o other_o apostle_n have_v successor_n as_o in_o superior_a seat_n nor_o do_v any_o patriarch_n much_o less_o twelve_o claim_v power_n as_o successor_n of_o any_o apostle_n save_v antioch_n and_o rome_n and_o antioch_n as_o from_o the_o same_o st._n peter_n but_o no_o universal_a sovereignty_n 5._o that_o whoever_o will_v turn_v papist_n must_v confess_v that_o he_o be_v a_o ungodly_a hypocrite_n before_o and_o that_o all_o profess_a christian_n be_v so_o save_o the_o papist_n that_o know_v their_o doctrine_n 6._o that_o he_o must_v renounce_v the_o sense_n of_o all_o sound_a man_n and_o believe_v they_o all_o deceive_v by_o miracle_n the_o content_n of_o the_o first_o part._n chap._n 1._o sect._n 1_o his_o explication_n of_o the_o term_n catholic_n church_n 1._o he_o exclude_v all_o from_o christ_n universal_a church_n and_o christianity_n that_o be_v no_o member_n of_o christian_a congregation_n yet_o mean_v not_o only_a church_n but_o family_n ship_n or_o any_o civil_a assembly_n damn_v all_o solitary_a christian_n or_o that_o be_v alone_o among_o infidel_n 2._o he_o make_v subjection_n to_o the_o supreme_a pastor_n necessary_a and_o yet_o say_v the_o votum_fw-la of_o it_o alone_o will_v serve_v sect._n 2._o he_o unchurch_v parish-church_n he_o make_v dependence_n on_o lawful_a pastor_n in_o general_a necessary_a but_o not_o on_o the_o pope_n particular_o sect._n 3_o what_o faith_n must_v be_v in_o a_o church-member_n his_o implicit_a discourse_n of_o implicit_a faith_n which_o indeed_o be_v no_o faith_n of_o any_o particular_a article_n several_a sense_n of_o implicit_a faith_n open_v his_o general_a faith_n prove_v no_o particular_a faith_n in_o what_o sense_n we_o believe_v all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v sect._n 8._o his_o instance_n explain_v sect._n 9_o when_o virtual_a repentance_n suffice_v sect._n 10._o his_o avoid_v to_o answer_v sect._n 11._o the_o papist_n church_n invisible_a sect._n 12._o his_o strange_a doctrine_n of_o general_n sect._n 13._o what_o christianity_n be_v be_v no_o point_n of_o faith_n with_o they_o sect._n 14._o the_o invisibility_n of_o their_o church_n further_o prove_v sect._n 15._o their_o contradiction_n about_o receive_v all_o faith_n on_o the_o church_n authority_n sect._n 16._o 17._o the_o true_a method_n of_o believe_v sect._n 18._o humane_a faith_n be_v join_v with_o divine_a sect._n 20._o what_o the_o essential_o of_o christianity_n be_v sect._n 21._o papist_n utter_o disagree_v what_o a_o christian_a be_v and_o confound_v and_o their_o church_n invisible_a sect._n 22._o note_n of_o great_a moment_n hereupon_o the_o baptise_v of_o man_n that_o believe_v only_o that_o there_o be_v a_o reward_v god_n be_v a_o new_a false_a baptism_n sect._n 23._o q_o 3_o who_o be_v the_o pastor_n who_o rejection_n unchurch_v man_n of_o parish_n priest_n q._n 4._o how_o shall_v all_o the_o world_n be_v sure_a that_o pope_n and_o priest_n have_v a_o just_a election_n or_o ordination_n sect._n 24_o 25_o 26_o 27_o 28._o chap._n 2._o their_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n heresy_n whether_o heresy_n be_v in_o will_n or_o understanding_n sect._n 1_o heretic_n by_o their_o definition_n be_v unknown_a sect._n 2._o the_o power_n of_o judge_v of_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o proposal_n make_v we_o the_o clergy_n master_n of_o all_o man_n life_n sect._n 3_o he_o make_v none_o heretic_n that_o deny_v not_o god_n veracity_n sect._n 4._o and_o all_o heretic_n to_o deny_v it_o yea_o all_o that_o receive_v not_o every_o truth_n safficient_o propose_v yet_o unsaith_o all_o and_o say_v that_o not_o culpable_a neglect_n of_o sufficient_a proof_n of_o all_o but_o contradiction_n to_o the_o know_a proposal_n of_o lawful_a superior_n make_v a_o heretic_n sect._n 7._o q._n what_o sufficient_a proposal_n be_v sect._n 8._o 9_o he_o say_v that_o the_o true_a church-governor_n may_v be_v know_v without_o revelation_n sect._n 10._o sufficiency_n further_o examine_v sect._n 11._o he_o hereticate_v themselves_o or_o none_o sect._n 12._o whether_o every_o misunderstanding_n of_o a_o intelligible_a text_n of_o scripture_n be_v heresy_n sect._n 13._o what_o heresy_n be_v indeed_o sect._n 14._o chap._n 3._o their_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n pope_n sect._n 1_o pope_n judge_v herteick_n by_o many_o council_n where_o christ_n institution_n of_o the_o papacy_n must_v be_v find_v sect._n 2._o who_o ad_fw-la esse_fw-la must_v elect_v the_o pope_n sect._n 3._o w._n j._n can_v and_o dare_v not_o tell_v consecration_n deny_v to_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o pope_n sect._n 6._o neither_o papal_a nor_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n he_o say_v depend_v on_o papal_a or_o episcopal_a ordination_n sect._n 7._o so_o they_o may_v be_v layman_n what_o such_o jurisdiction_n be_v sect._n 8._o what_o notice_n or_o proof_n be_v necessary_a to_o the_o subject_n chap._n 4._o their_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n bishop_n the_o pope_n be_v not_o of_o god_n ordain_v in_o their_o way_n sect._n 1._o 2._o their_o bishop_n of_o calcedon_n testimony_n put_v off_o sect._n 3_o they_o make_v all_o man_n that_o will_v or_o no_o man_n to_o be_v bishop_n his_o great_a confusion_n and_o contradiction_n say_v we_o want_v not_o episcopal_a consecration_n but_o election_n
be_v no_o spirit_n but_o god_n and_o the_o anima_fw-la mundi_fw-la and_o say_v that_o these_o be_v immaterial_a and_o never_o the_o more_o believe_v that_o angel_n or_o soul_n be_v spirit_n and_o no_o man_n can_v reasonable_o imagine_v that_o omnis_fw-la spiritus_fw-la est_fw-la immaterialis_fw-la do_v include_v omnis_fw-la anima_fw-la est_fw-la spiritus_fw-la or_o that_o w._n i_n est_fw-la spiritus_fw-la immaterialis_fw-la so_o one_o may_v say_v that_o all_o that_o be_v sanctify_v shall_v be_v glorify_v and_o yet_o not_o believe_v that_o peter_n paul_n yea_o or_o christ_n be_v holy_a of_o this_o sort_n of_o knowledge_n i_o mention_v that_o which_o be_v a_o belief_n of_o no_o more_o but_o the_o formal_a object_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v god_n veracity_n that_o god_n can_v lie_v and_o so_o that_o all_o that_o god_n say_v be_v true_a when_o yet_o one_o that_o confess_v this_o deny_v all_o the_o bible_n to_o be_v his_o word_n and_o believe_v rather_o mahomet_n amida_n or_o confutius_n to_o have_v be_v god_n messenger_n or_o the_o ancient_a oracle_n at_o delphos_n etc._n etc._n to_o have_v be_v his_o word_n but_o the_o confuse_a head_n of_o w._n i._n confound_v several_a of_o these_o different_a sort_n and_o because_o he_o think_v that_o he_o may_v handsome_o call_v a_o mere_a general_a knowledge_n or_o faith_n confuse_a therefore_o he_o confound_v the_o true_a confuse_a faith_n with_o the_o general_n which_o be_v easy_o distinguish_v and_o first_o he_o call_v for_o my_o proof_n that_o a_o mere_a general_a belief_n be_v no_o belief_n at_o all_o of_o the_o particular_n though_o a_o confuse_a faith_n may_v i_o prove_v it_o 1._o where_o there_o be_v no_o intellectual_a conception_n of_o the_o particular_n there_o be_v no_o actual_a belief_n of_o the_o particular_n but_o where_o there_o be_v only_o a_o conception_n of_o a_o general_a proposition_n there_o be_v no_o intellectual_a conception_n of_o the_o particular_n ergo_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o major_n be_v undeniable_a and_o the_o minor_a no_o less_o 2._o where_o the_o particular_a object_n be_v not_o understand_v or_o believe_v there_o be_v not_o the_o particular_a act_n of_o know_v or_o believe_v that_o object_n for_o the_o object_n be_v essential_a to_o the_o act_n but_o where_o there_o be_v only_o a_o knowledge_n and_o belief_n of_o the_o general_a object_n there_o the_o particular_a object_n be_v not_o understand_v or_o believe_v ergo_fw-la etc._n etc._n 3._o that_o be_v not_o a_o actual_a belief_n of_o the_o particular_n which_o may_v consist_v with_o the_o actual_a belief_n of_o the_o contradictory_n but_o a_o mere_a belief_n of_o the_o general_n proposition_n may_v consist_v i_o h_o the_o contradictory_n to_o the_o belief_n of_o particular_n ergo_fw-la etc._n etc._n but_o he_o come_v upon_o i_o with_o some_o instance_n so_o word_v as_o may_v deceive_v the_o ignorant_a 1._o say_v he_o do_v not_o this_o proposition_n omne_fw-la animal_n vivit_fw-la contain_v the_o substance_n of_o these_o truth_n equus_n vivit_fw-la leo_fw-la vivit_fw-la aquila_n vivit_fw-la &_o c_o answ._n no_o sure_o unless_o by_o substance_n you_o mean_v not_o the_o other_o proposition_n but_o somewhat_o else_o what_o you_o list_v for_o it_o contain_v not_o the_o very_a subject_n that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o thing_n as_o equus_n leo_n aquila_n in_o be_v and_o that_o they_o be_v animalia_fw-la may_v not_o a_o man_n that_o never_o hear_v or_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o creature_n as_o a_o eagle_n lion_n etc._n etc._n no_o more_o than_o a_o unicorn_n or_o phoenix_n yet_o know_v that_o omne_fw-la animal_n vivit_fw-la 2._o he_o say_v believe_v all_o that_o be_v in_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o true_a express_o i_o believe_v in_o confuso_fw-la all_o that_o be_v in_o genesis_n etc._n etc._n answ._n yes_o if_o in_o confuso_fw-la be_v terminus_fw-la diminuens_fw-la to_o actual_a belief_n of_o the_o particular_n by_o mere_a believe_v the_o first_o you_o do_v not_o actual_o believe_v a_o word_n of_o genesis_n or_o exodus_fw-la etc._n etc._n for_o your_o proposition_n say_v not_o that_o there_o be_v any_o such_o book_n in_o the_o scripture_n as_o i_o believe_v all_o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o be_v true_a and_o yet_o believe_v not_o tobit_n judith_n bell_n and_o the_o dragon_n to_o be_v true_a because_o i_o believe_v they_o not_o to_o be_v the_o holy_a scripture_n so_o may_v other_o by_o genesis_n exodus_fw-la etc._n etc._n as_o the_o heretic_n of_o old_a deny_v many_o book_n and_o as_o infidel_n may_v believe_v all_o that_o be_v god_n word_n to_o be_v true_a and_o yet_o not_o believe_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v his_o word_n 3._o say_v he_o be_v not_o a_o express_a knowledge_n of_o the_o genus_fw-la a_o confuse_a knowledge_n of_o species_n under_o it_o and_o so_o the_o species_n of_o the_o individua_fw-la answ._n yes_o if_o by_o confuse_a knowledge_n you_o mean_v no_o knowledge_n of_o they_o it_o be_v no_o true_a knowledge_n of_o they_o at_o all_o 4._o but_o he_o say_v that_o my_o word_n not_o know_v whether_o you_o be_v animal_n or_o cadaver_n be_v a_o contradictory_n proposition_n answ._n say_v you_o so_o may_v not_o i_o see_v you_o asleep_o and_o think_v that_o you_o be_v dead_a do_v this_o proposition_n omne_fw-la animal_n vivit_fw-la include_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o wight_n in_o be_v as_o w._n i._n or_o n._n n_o or_o that_o he_o be_v now_o alive_a or_o that_o it_o be_v real_o a_o man_n and_o not_o a_o horse_n that_o be_v so_o call_v any_o more_o than_o that_o bucephalus_n be_v a_o man_n yet_o do_v he_o back_o these_o absurdity_n with_o advise_v i_o to_o a_o little_a more_o heed_n to_o what_o i_o write_v note_v that_o page_n 9_o he_o assert_v that_o the_o object_n of_o implicit_a faith_n deliver_v in_o the_o school_n be_v nothing_o save_o particular_a truth_n contain_v in_o substance_n under_o some_o general_a proposition_n so_o that_o they_o be_v neither_o know_v nor_o believe_v distinct_o and_o express_o yet_o in_o confuso_fw-la they_o be_v by_o the_o knowledge_n or_o belief_n of_o their_o general_a proposition_n answ._n but_o there_o be_v a_o confuse_a knowledge_n of_o particular_n which_o be_v actual_a of_o the_o be_v of_o they_o though_o not_o distinct_a not_o fit_a or_o ripe_a for_o word_n to_o utter_v it_o this_o be_v different_a from_o the_o knowledge_n of_o mere_a general_n which_o be_v indeed_o no_o knowledge_n of_o the_o particular_n that_o any_o such_o be_v contain_v in_o those_o general_n at_o all_o he_o next_o come_v to_o expound_v his_o word_n that_o faith_n believe_v all_o that_o god_n reveal_v explicit_o 4._o or_o implicit_o that_o be_v now_o some_o thing_n explicit_o and_o some_o thing_n implicit_o when_o as_o i_o ask_v he_o what_o be_v the_o faith_n in_o which_o we_o must_v unite_v who_o will_v have_v expect_v such_o a_o answer_n that_o it_o be_v a_o general_a belief_n of_o all_o thing_n reveal_v and_o a_o particular_a belief_n of_o some_o thing_n that_o it_o be_v such_o a_o belief_n of_o all_o particular_n as_o be_v no_o real_a actual_a belief_n of_o some_o of_o they_o and_o it_o be_v a_o actual_a belief_n of_o other_o some_o but_o be_v any_o man_n ever_o the_o near_a the_o knowledge_n of_o their_o mind_n by_o this_o 1._o here_o be_v no_o notice_n what_o the_o general_n be_v that_o must_v be_v believe_v he_o profess_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o formal_a object_n only_o that_o be_v the_o veracity_n or_o faithfulness_n of_o god_n the_o revealer_n and_o what_o else_o it_o be_v whether_o that_o all_o that_o the_o scripture_n reveal_v be_v true_a or_o that_o all_o that_o the_o church_n declare_v to_o be_v god_n word_n be_v true_a and_o who_o we_o must_v take_v for_o that_o church_n etc._n etc._n he_o have_v not_o tell_v we_o and_o so_o have_v give_v a_o answer_n which_o be_v no_o answer_n 2._o nor_o have_v he_o tell_v we_o what_o the_o particular_n be_v that_o must_v be_v believe_v but_o we_o may_v know_v what_o faith_n it_o be_v that_o the_o church_n must_v unite_v in_o by_o hear_v that_o it_o be_v something_o we_o know_v not_o what_o or_o that_o it_o be_v somewhat_o in_o general_n and_o somewhat_o in_o particular_a do_v this_o account_n satisfy_v themselves_o or_o do_v they_o look_v that_o it_o shall_v satisfy_v we_o will_v this_o distinguish_v their_o church_n from_o heretic_n or_o mahometan_n do_v not_o these_o believe_v somewhat_o in_o general_n and_o somewhat_o in_o particular_a and_o do_v not_o heathen_n do_v the_o same_o if_o this_o be_v enough_o for_o christianity_n or_o concord_n why_o do_v they_o call_v we_o heretic_n be_v we_o not_o all_o of_o that_o faith_n which_o believe_v somewhat_o in_o general_n even_o that_o all_o god_n word_n be_v true_a and_o somewhat_o in_o particular_a but_o it_o be_v well_o that_o he_o say_v that_o the_o explicit_a belief_n of_o somewhat_o be_v necessary_a though_o
we_o may_v not_o know_v what_o and_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o while_o they_o have_v a_o explicit_a belief_n of_o some_o article_n they_o can_v never_o be_v think_v to_o be_v without_o faith_n 5._o answ._n either_o he_o mean_v that_o faith_n which_o be_v in_o the_o question_n which_o must_v notify_v we_o from_o heretic_n and_o from_o other_o without_o and_o which_o the_o church_n must_v unite_v in_o or_o some_o other_o faith_n if_o any_o other_o do_v he_o not_o wilful_o juggle_v and_o fly_v from_o answer_v when_o he_o pretend_v to_o answer_v if_o he_o mean_v the_o faith_n in_o question_n than_o mahometan_n and_o heathen_n be_v of_o their_o faith_n and_o member_n of_o their_o church_n yea_o and_o all_o that_o they_o call_v heretic_n and_o anathematise_v themselves_o yea_o and_o the_o devil_n that_o believe_v and_o tremble_v but_o one_o will_v think_v that_o pag._n 11_o he_o describe_v the_o necessary_a implicit_a faith_n when_o he_o say_v our_o ordinary_a sense_n be_v so_o to_o believe_v that_o point_n that_o we_o have_v no_o distinct_a or_o express_a knowledge_n 6._o of_o it_o but_o only_o a_o confuse_a understanding_n because_o it_o be_v contain_v in_o confuso_fw-la under_o this_o proposition_n i_o believe_v all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v or_o i_o believe_v all_o that_o be_v deliver_v to_o be_v believe_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n answ._n 1._o but_o i_o must_v again_o repeat_v that_o here_o the_o word_n confuse_a be_v use_v but_o to_o confound_v this_o be_v no_o actual_a belief_n of_o any_o particular_a under_o that_o proposition_n when_o a_o thing_n be_v actual_o know_v in_o itself_o but_o only_o by_o a_o general_n knowledge_n or_o not_o d●…stinct_n this_o be_v true_o a_o impersect_n knowledge_n it_o be_v to_o know_v somewhat_o of_o that_o thing_n though_o not_o its_o form_n or_o individuation_n if_o i_o see_v something_o which_o i_o know_v not_o whether_o it_o be_v a_o man_n or_o a_o tree_n a_o steeple_n or_o a_o rock_n i_o very_o know_v somewhat_o of_o that_o thing_n itself_o but_o not_o the_o form_n of_o it_o if_o i_o see_v a_o book_n open_a at_o two-yard_n distance_n i_o see_v the_o letter_n distinct_o but_o not_o formal_o for_o i_o know_v not_o what_o any_o one_o of_o they_o be_v if_o i_o see_v a_o clod_n of_o earth_n or_o a_o river_n i_o see_v much_o of_o the_o very_a substance_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o water_n but_o i_o discern_v not_o the_o sand_n or_o the_o drop_n as_o distinct_a part_n here_o something_o be_v know_v though_o the_o special_a or_o numerical_a difference_n much_o more_o some_o accident_n be_v unknown_a but_o in_o know_v w._n i_n general_a proposition_n only_o i_o know_v nothing_o at_o all_o of_o the_o particular_n as_o shall_v yet_o be_v further_o manifest_v 2._o and_o mark_v what_o his_o general_a proposition_n be_v which_o he_o say_v be_v the_o object_n of_o their_o 7._o implicit_a say_v viz._n i_o believe_v all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v or_o all_o that_o be_v deliver_v to_o be_v believe_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n either_o he_o real_o mean_v that_o this_o be_v the_o implicit_a faith_n by_o which_o christian_n be_v notifi●…d_v and_o which_o unit_v the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o distinguish_v they_o from_o those_o without_o or_o he_o do_v not_o if_o he_o do_v not_o what_o do_v he_o but_o deceive_v his_o r●…ader_n if_o he_o do_v then_o as_o i_o say_v all_o christian_n heretic_n most_o mahometan_n and_o heathen_n believe_v the_o first_o proposition_n viz._n that_o all_o be_v true_a that_o god_n reveal_v and_o protestant_n and_o papist_n and_o most_o other_o sort_n of_o christian_n agree_v in_o the_o second_o the_o scripture-truth_n here_o then_o be_v a_o justification_n of_o our_o faith_n so_o far_o but_o do_v you_o think_v that_o he_o mean_v as_o he_o seem_v to_o mean_v do_v they_o not_o hold_v it_o also_o necessary_a that_o man_n must_v take_v their_o church_n to_o be_v the_o declarer_fw-la of_o this_o scripture-truth_n and_o also_o that_o tradition_n not_o write_v in_o the_o bible_n be_v believe_v must_v not_o both_o these_o make_v up_o their_o implicit_a faith_n if_o our_o general_a faith_n and_o they_o be_v the_o same_o what_o make_v they_o accuse_v we_o herein_o as_o they_o do_v but_o now_o pag._n 11._o he_o proceed_v to_o assault_v i_o with_o such_o reason_n as_o this_o no_o man_n know_v all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v to_o wit_n with_o a_o actual_a understanding_n of_o every_o particular_a 8._o ergo_fw-la say_v i_o no_o man_n believe_v all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v now_o i_o proceed_v if_o no_o man_n believe_v all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v than_o you_o believe_v not_o all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v then_o further_o whoever_o believe_v not_o all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v be_v no_o good_a christian_n nor_o in_o state_n of_o salvation_n but_o you_o believe_v not_o all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v ergo_fw-la you_o be_v no_o good_a christian_n nor_o in_o a_o state_n of_o salvation_n see_v you_o not_o how_o fair_a a_o thread_n you_o have_v spin_v or_o will_v you_o say_v that_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v be_v a_o good_a christian_a if_o you_o will_v you_o may_v but_o no_o good_a christian_n will_v believe_v you_o answ._n the_o man_n seem_v in_o good_a sadness_n in_o all_o this_o childish_a play_n and_o must_v rome_n be_v thus_o uphold_v and_o must_v poor_a man_n faith_n and_o conscience_n be_v thus_o lay_v upon_o a_o game_n at_o cheat_a word_n no_o wonder_n that_o this_o hector_n will_v have_v nothing_o say_v in_o dispute_n but_o syllogism_n etc._n etc._n few_o lad_n and_o woman_n will_v unmask_v his_o pitiful_a deceit_n whether_o the_o great_a disputer_n see_v their_o vanity_n himself_o i_o know_v not_o but_o man_n at_o age_n that_o can_v speak_v and_o try_v sense_n will_v see_v that_o all_o this_o cant_n be_v but_o the_o sporting-equivocation_n of_o one_o syllable_n all_o this_o all_z be_v either_o a_o term_n of_o a_o mere_a general_a proposition_n e._n g._n all_o god_n word_n be_v true_a here_o i_o believe_v what_o be_v predicate_v of_o this_o general_a word_n all_o and_o take_v this_o for_o a_o true_a proposition_n all_o god_n word_n be_v true_a or_o it_o signify_v the_o very_a thing_n species_n or_o part_n as_o in_o themselves_o know_v and_o so_o if_o the_o very_a thing_n species_n or_o part_n general_o express_v by_o the_o word_n all_o be_v not_o themselves_o know_v as_o such_o thing_n species_n or_o part_n it_o be_v no_o actual_a knowledge_n of_o they_o at_o all_o to_o know_v that_o truth_n of_o the_o say_v general_a proposition_n and_o do_v not_o every_o novice_n in_o logic_n know_v this_o the_o same_o i_o say_v of_o belief_n as_o of_o knowledge_n he_o be_v no_o good_a christian_n who_o believe_v not_o that_o all_o divine_a revelation_n be_v true_a which_o heretic_n and_o heathen_n believe_v but_o neither_o i_o nor_o any_o christian_a know_v to_o he_o or_o i_o know_v or_o believe_v all_o the_o particular_a verity_n which_o god_n have_v reveal_v and_o he_o believe_v not_o one_o of_o they_o beside_o that_o proposition_n itself_o which_o be_v find_v among_o the_o rest_n who_o believe_v but_o that_o general_a but_o yet_o he_o will_v justify_v his_o vanity_n by_o more_o instance_n pag._n 12_o he_o say_v when_o you_o profess_v in_o 9_o t●…e_a creed_n that_o god_n be_v the_o creator_n of_o all_o thing_n visible_a and_o invisible_a i_o demand_v do_v you_o believe_v as_o you_o profess_v if_o you_o do_v than_o you_o may_v believe_v with_o a_o actual_a belief_n that_o he_o be_v the_o creator_n of_o many_o thing_n visible_a and_o invisible_a whereof_o you_o have_v no_o actual_a understanding_n or_o which_o be_v whole_o unknown_a particular_o or_o distinct_o to_o you_o or_o by_o any_o other_o knowledge_n than_o as_o confuse_o contain_v in_o the_o word_n all._n ans._n 1._o what_o be_v all_o this_o but_o to_o say_v that_o i_o believe_v this_o proposition_n all_o thing_n of_o which_o many_o be_v unknown_a to_o ●…e_v be_v create_v by_o god_n this_o proposition_n i_o know_v and_o believe_v but_o the_o thing_n themselves_o as_o such_o i_o no_o further_o believe_v than_o i_o know_v if_o i_o know_v not_o that_o they_o be_v i_o believe_v not_o that_o they_o be_v if_o i_o know_v not_o what_o they_o be_v i_o believe_v not_o what_o they_o be_v that_o be_v if_o i_o have_v not_o a_o intellectual_a conception_n that_o they_o be_v and_o what_o they_o be_v for_o believe_v be_v indeed_o but_o a_o know_v by_o the_o medium_n of_o a_o testimony_n or_o revelation_n and_o the_o veracity_n of_o the_o revealer_n i_o believe_v that_o god_n ma●…_n all_o that_o be_v about_o the_o centre_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o yet_o i_o neither_o know_v nor_o actual_o believe_v any_o one_o thing_n species_n or_o individual_a or_o
to_o another_o or_o the_o king_n may_v pardon_v all_o crime_n by_o a_o act_n of_o oblivion_n without_o know_v what_o they_o be_v but_o if_o the_o question_n be_v about_o a_o intellectual_a act_n who_o object_n do_v specify_v it_o intrinsical_o in_o the_o mind_n as_o whether_o the_o king_n actual_o know_v the_o particular_a crime_n which_o he_o pardon_v if_o you_o say_v that_o he_o know_v the_o particular_n actual_o in_o confuso_fw-la because_o the_o only_o know_v in_o general_a that_o some_o crime_n there_o be_v this_o be_v but_o to_o talk_v against_o all_o the_o usual_a ●…ense_n of_o mankind_n and_o to_o call_v that_o a_o actual_a know_v of_o particular_n in_o confuso_fw-la which_o other_o man_n call_v no_o actual_a knowledge_n of_o particular_n but_o only_o of_o general_n which_o in_o some_o case_n may_v be_v call_v a_o virtual_a knowledge_n of_o particular_n which_o be_v no_o actual_a knowledge_n of_o they_o and_o in_o some_o not_o but_o if_o he_o have_v hear_v some_o imperfect_a confuse_a narrative_n of_o the_o crime_n themselves_o this_o may_v be_v call_v a_o actual_a conf●…ed_a knowledge_n of_o they_o but_o mark_v reader_n what_o edification_n be_v to_o be_v expect_v from_o these_o man_n disputation_n he_o know_v very_o well_o that_o he_o and_o i_o be_v agree_v that_o all_o christian_n must_v take_v god_n veracity_n in_o his_o revelation_n 11._o for_o the_o formal_a object_n without_o which_o faith_n be_v no_o faith_n and_o so_o must_v believe_v that_o god_n can_v lie_v and_o that_o all_o be_v true_a which_o he_o assert_v and_o that_o we_o protestant_n hold_v that_o this_o be_v not_o enough_o nor_o include_v the_o knowledge_n or_o belief_n of_o any_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v reveal_v beside_o this_o one_o general_a he_o know_v that_o our_o question_n be_v whether_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o believe_v some_o particular_n as_o reveal_v by_o god_n and_o whether_o this_o faith_n do_v not_o go_v to_o essentiate_v a_o christian_a and_o a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o if_o so_o then_o what_o those_o particular_n be_v which_o must_v be_v believe_v to_o constitute_v a_o true_a christian_a and_o member_n of_o the_o church_n now_o he_o dare_v not_o come_v into_o the_o light_n and_o answer_v this_o question_n but_o as_o if_o he_o be_v mock_v woman_n or_o child_n say_v all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v must_v be_v believe_v explicit_o or_o implicit_o we_o understand_v you_o sir_n that_o we_o must_v believe_v this_o proposition_n all_o that_o god_n reveal_v be_v true_a but_o be_v that_o enough_o then_o heathen_n idolater_n sadducees_o infidel_n mahometan_n be_v christian_n and_o member_n of_o your_o church_n but_o do_v they_o think_v so_o themselves_o if_o you_o can_v thus_o with_o a_o juggle_n make_v all_o the_o world_n christian_n the_o like_a art_n may_v make_v they_o subject_n of_o the_o pope_n no_o say_v he_o there_o must_v some_o thing_n also_o be_v believe_v explicit_o but_o the_o question_n be_v what_o they_o be_v o_o there_o you_o must_v excuse_v he_o he_o dare_v not_o he_o can_v tell_v you_o what_o but_o sir_n be_v these_o some_o thing_n essential_a to_o christianity_n and_o church-membership_a or_o not_o if_o you_o say_v not_o what_o nothing_o essential_a to_o christian_a faith_n in_o particular_a be_v it_o faith_n and_o yet_o a_o belief_n of_o nothing_o in_o particular_a be_v there_o no_o material_a difference_n at_o all_o between_o a_o christian_a and_o a_o sadducee_n infidel_n mahometan_n or_o heathen_a and_o yet_o can_v protestant_n be_v save_v for_o want_v of_o the_o right_a belief_n o_o marvellous_a religion_n but_o if_o any_o particular_a belief_n be_v necessary_a can_v it_o be_v know_v what_o it_o be_v how_o then_o can_v a_o christian_n be_v know_v by_o himself_o or_o other_o from_o all_o the_o unbelieving_a world_n or_o your_o church_n from_o other_o man_n this_o be_v my_o question_n to_o you_o be_v not_o your_o church_n then_o invisible_a when_o no_o man_n can_v know_v what_o make_v a_o member_n of_o it_o and_o yet_o the_o man_n talk_v confident_o in_o his_o darkness_n as_o if_o this_o will_v serve_v instead_o of_o light_n 12._o and_o say_v i_o make_v my_o church_n visible_a though_o by_o comprehend_v in_o it_o all_o those_o who_o profess_v a_o explicit_a faith_n in_o several_a article_n which_o they_o understand_v distinct_o and_o a_o implicit_a belief_n of_o the_o rest_n whereof_o they_o have_v not_o distinct_a understanding_n by_o profess_v that_o they_o believe_v all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v to_o be_v believe_v by_o they_o whatsoever_o they_o be_v in_o particular_a now_o so_o long_o as_o they_o persevere_v in_o this_o belief_n though_o they_o shall_v happen_v through_o culpable_a negligence_n not_o to_o arrive_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o many_o thing_n which_o they_o ought_v to_o know_v necessitate_v praecepti_fw-la yet_o they_o remain_v member_n though_o corrupt_a and_o wicked_a of_o the_o church_n whereby_o you_o see_v how_o easy_o i_o avoid_v that_o difficulty_n which_o you_o think_v i_o can_v not_o ans._n too_o easy_o against_o all_o reason_n reader_n this_o paragraph_n be_v worth_a the_o nothing_o 1._o several_a article_n must_v be_v believe_v explicit_o but_o not_o a_o word_n to_o tell_v you_o which_o or_o what_o they_o be_v or_o whether_o it_o be_v any_o whatever_o that_o will_v serve_v the_o turn_n if_o it_o be_v but_o that_o cain_n be_v the_o son_n of_o adam_n 2._o the_o implicit_a belief_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v not_o here_o say_v to_o be_v any_o implicit_a belief_n of_o the_o pope_n council_n or_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o that_o they_o believe_v all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v to_o be_v believe_v by_o they_o and_o be_v we_o not_o yet_o so_o far_o right_a and_o reconcile_v this_o be_v too_o kind_a to_o the_o protestant_n for_o it_o take_v in_o all_o mankind_n with_o they_o who_o confess_v a_o god_n for_o to_o give_v he_o the_o lie_n be_v to_o deny_v his_o perfection_n that_o be_v his_o godhead_n 3._o mark_v that_o even_o culpable_a ignorance_n of_o other_o thing_n unchurch_v not_o 4._o and_o yet_o all_o this_o denote_v but_o a_o corrupt_a and_o wicked_a member_n of_o their_o holy_a church_n which_o if_o such_o can_v be_v save_v 5._o and_o with_o this_o chat_n the_o man_n think_v he_o have_v do_v his_o business_n and_o doubtless_o there_o be_v some_o so_o ignorant_a as_o to_o believe_v he_o but_o all_o this_o want_v but_o two_o thing_n to_o make_v it_o just_o the_o true_a christian_a faith_n one_o be_v to_o name_v those_o particular_n essential_a to_o christianity_n which_o must_v be_v believe_v the_o other_o be_v to_o distinguish_v between_o a_o sound_n and_o serious_a practical_a belief_n and_o a_o dead_a opinion_n or_o profession_n and_o to_o conclude_v that_o the_o sincere_a practical_a belief_n constitute_v invisible_a justify_v member_n and_o the_o profession_n make_v only_o visible_a one_o next_o he_o have_v another_o bout_n against_o omne_fw-la animal_n vivit_fw-la the_o question_n be_v whether_o to_o know_v this_o be_v to_o know_v that_o w._n i._n bucephalus_n a_o phoenix_n or_o a_o unicorn_n live_v i_o say_v no_o because_o 13._o it_o may_v stand_v with_o the_o ignorance_n that_o ever_o there_o be_v or_o will_v be_v such_o a_o animal_n as_o be_v call_v w._n i._o or_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n but_o he_o make_v all_o good_a on_o his_o side_n by_o talk_v of_o impossibility_n and_o suchlike_a word_n which_o be_v of_o the_o same_o use_n in_o respect_n to_o our_o argument_n that_o drum_n in_o a_o army_n be_v to_o drown_v the_o groan_n of_o die_a man_n and_o put_v courage_n into_o the_o soldier_n he_o say_v when_o philosopher_n say_v omne_fw-la animal_n vivit_fw-la they_o mean_v it_o of_o the_o essence_n or_o notion_n of_o animal_n to_o be_v a_o live_a thing_n and_o this_o be_v true_a of_o i_o and_o all_o particular_n whether_o we_o be_v in_o actual_a existence_n or_o not_o be_v not_o here_o excellent_a philosophy_n it_o be_v very_o true_a that_o this_o be_v a_o true_a proposition_n omne_fw-la animal_n vivit_fw-la whether_o vv._n 1_n exist_v or_o not_o but_o be_v this_o true_a of_o vv._n i._n and_o all_o particular_n whether_o they_o exist_v or_o not_o that_o which_o exi_v not_o be_v nothing_o neither_o vv._n i._n nor_o any_o particular_a the_o sum_n be_v then_o nothing_o be_v a_o live_a thing_n or_o animal_n there_o be_v a_o vv._n i._n and_o all_o particular_n which_o be_v all_o nothing_o and_o yet_o be_v animal_n or_o live_v who_o will_v not_o turn_v papist_n and_o run_v into_o a_o nunnery_n that_o be_v but_o charm_v with_o such_o philosophy_n next_o pag_n 15._o he_o say_v that_o how_o much_o must_v be_v believe_v explicit_o be_v a_o dispute_n among_o divine_n not_o necessary_a to_o be_v determine_v here_o yet_o i_o will_v say_v something_o to_o that_o present_o 14._o ans._n i_o warrant_v you_o
nothing_o be_v necessary_a to_o you_o to_o do_v which_o you_o can_v do_v without_o come_v into_o the_o light_n it_o be_v a_o dispute_n among_o the_o papist_n divine_n what_o a_o christian_a be_v or_o what_o christianity_n be_v and_o yet_o they_o have_v a_o infallible_a judge_n of_o all_o the_o scripture_n and_o all_o controversy_n and_o yet_o they_o can_v tell_v that_o protestant_n be_v heretic_n and_o yet_o they_o can_v tell_v who_o be_v member_n of_o their_o church_n though_o it_o be_v a_o dispute_n among_o divine_n but_o mark_v that_o this_o be_v not_o then_o with_o they_o de_fw-mi fide_fw-la any_o point_n of_o faith_n what_o a_o christian_a be_v or_o what_o must_v be_v believe_v for_o their_o divine_n dispute_v not_o that_o which_o they_o take_v to_o be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la i_o tell_v he_o that_o a_o man_n may_v believe_v that_o the_o bible_n be_v true_a and_o god_n word_n and_o yet_o not_o know_v a_o word_n that_o be_v in_o it_o or_o that_o christ_n be_v the_o messiah_n or_o that_o there_o be_v ever_o such_o a_o person_n 15._o he_o answer_v that_o this_o be_v moral_o impossible_a for_o either_o such_o a_o person_n believe_v the_o bible_n rash_o and_o imprudent_o and_o then_o according_a to_o all_o divine_n his_o faith_n can_v be_v supernatural_a and_o divine_a or_o sufficient_a to_o constitute_v he_o a_o christian_a or_o he_o believe_v it_o prudent_o by_o prudential_a motive_n of_o credibility_n now_o that_o can_v be_v no_o other_o than_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o he_o can_v be_v ignorant_a to_o profess_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v no_o other_o save_o that_o though_o he_o know_v not_o by_o experience_n that_o christ_n be_v mention_v in_o the_o bible_n he_o can_v but_o know_v that_o he_o be_v profess_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n by_o those_o of_o the_o catholic_n church_n who_o deliver_v the_o bible_n to_o he_o as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o that_o such_o a_o faith_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n ans._n here_o be_v many_o thing_n worthy_a our_o consideration_n 1._o that_o a_o man_n be_v not_o a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v a_o christian_a unless_o his_o faith_n be_v supernatural_a and_o divine_a not_o only_o in_o the_o object_n but_o his_o act_n and_o sure_o no_o man_n know_v what_o other_o man_n act_n of_o faith_n be_v supernatural_a and_o divine_a therefore_o no_o man_n know_v who_o be_v a_o christian_n and_o so_o their_o church_n be_v still_o invisible_a 2._o no_o man_n that_o believe_v the_o bible_n rash_o and_o imprudent_o be_v a_o christian_n and_o no_o man_n know_v whether_o another_o believe_v it_o not_o rash_o and_o imprudent_o yea_o whether_o he_o believe_v it_o at_o all_o therefore_o no_o man_n know_v who_o be_v a_o christian_n or_o member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 3._o no_o other_o motive_n than_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n can_v serve_v to_o free_v a_o man_n from_o this_o rashness_n imprudence_n and_o nullity_n of_o his_o christianity_n 1._o but_o why_o then_o have_v we_o not_o this_o general_n the_o church_n catholic_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v and_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v receive_v only_o by_o its_o authority_n before_o in_o the_o description_n of_o implicit_a or_o explicit_a faith_n 2._o be_v that_o man_n no_o christian_a in_o the_o primitive_a time_n who_o be_v convert_v by_o a_o single_a apostle_n and_o take_v not_o the_o faith_n on_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n do_v the_o eunuch_n convert_v by_o philip_n act._n 8._o or_o the_o jailor_n and_o lydia_n convert_v by_o paul_n act._n 16._o or_o the_o 3000_o convert_v by_o peter_n act._n 2._o receive_v faith_n on_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n or_o the_o indian_n when_o convert_v by_o frumentius_n and_o edesus_fw-la or_o the_o abassian_a empire_n that_o till_o late_o know_v nothing_o of_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o pretension_n or_o do_v we_o read_v that_o the_o apostle_n do_v use_v that_o argument_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n to_o convert_v their_o hearer_n or_o that_o they_o always_o first_o tell_v they_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o such_o a_o church_n if_o by_o the_o church_n you_o mean_v any_o single_a apostle_n or_o teacher_n hold_v to_o that_o and_o we_o shall_v do_v well_o enough_o with_o you_o 3._o but_o authority_n be_v a_o ambiguous_a word_n and_o may_v deceive_v we_o maintain_v that_o a_o preserve_n and_o teach_v ministerial_a authority_n be_v usual_o needful_a to_o man_n conversion_n to_o the_o faith_n though_o not_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o be_v first_o believe_v by_o the_o hearer_n but_o a_o judge_a authority_n viz._n whether_o there_o be_v a_o god_n a_o christ_n a_o scripture_n a_o heaven_n etc._n etc._n or_o not_o which_o determine_v by_o a_o sentence_n rather_o than_o teach_v by_o open_v that_o evidence_n which_o cause_v belief_n in_o the_o teacher_n himself_o this_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o man_n faith_n 4._o and_o what_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v hear_v a_o preacher_n open_v the_o other_o reason_n of_o christianity_n without_o talk_v of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o its_o authority_n and_o shall_v hereupon_o believe_v or_o shall_v believe_v by_o the_o bare_a read_n of_o a_o bible_n how_o prove_v you_o that_o this_o man_n be_v no_o christian_a nor_o shall_v be_v save_v when_o christ_n say_v he_o that_o believe_v shall_v be_v save_v and_o shall_v not_o perish_v and_o say_v not_o he_o that_o believe_v on_o any_o other_o motive_n than_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o that_o must_v be_v the_o roman_n believe_v rash_o and_o impudent_o and_o shall_v perish_v 4._o but_o it_o be_v well_o worth_a the_o enquiry_n can_v we_o possible_o find_v it_o out_o what_o he_o mean_v by_o 16._o know_v the_o church_n and_o its_o profession_n and_o its_o authority_n and_o whether_o this_o be_v a_o act_n of_o necessary_a faith_n before_o any_o thing_n else_o can_v be_v believe_v or_o what_o other_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v contain_v in_o our_o belief_n of_o this_o church_n and_o its_o authority_n and_o what_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o this_o faith_n it_o seem_v that_o he_o suppose_v that_o the_o church_n must_v be_v know_v before_o that_o the_o christian_a faith_n be_v believe_v and_o that_o in_o know_v the_o church_n we_o must_v know_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o know_v that_o they_o be_v a_o company_n of_o man_n call_v the_o christian_a church_n and_o another_o thing_n to_o know_v what_o a_o christian_a church_n be_v and_o another_o thing_n to_o know_v that_o this_o company_n of_o man_n be_v that_o church_n must_v all_o these_o be_v know_v before_o we_o can_v believe_v or_o but_o one_o or_o two_o and_o which_o 1._o if_o the_o name_n be_v enough_o a_o man_n may_v know_v that_o a_o company_n of_o man_n be_v call_v christian_n or_o mahumetanes_n who_o know_v not_o at_o all_o what_o christianity_n or_o mahumetanism_n be_v you_o say_v that_o it_o must_v be_v know_v that_o they_o profess_v to_o trust_v in_o christ_n this_o they_o may_v do_v and_o not_o know_v who_o christ_n be_v whether_o god_n or_o man_n or_o what_o he_o have_v do_v or_o will_v do_v for_o we_o if_o you_o say_v that_o they_o must_v know_v that_o they_o profess_v that_o christ_n be_v the_o saviour_n so_o they_o may_v do_v and_o yet_o not_o know_v what_o the_o word_n saviour_n signify_v or_o what_o christ_n ever_o do_v or_o will_v do_v for_o our_o salvation_n 2._o but_o if_o he_o mean_v here_o that_o every_o one_o that_o will_v believe_v god_n word_n must_v first_o know_v the_o church_n as_o define_v or_o know_v it_o in_o all_o its_o essence_n then_o 1._o how_o few_o will_v he_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v to_o be_v christian_n and_o how_o will_v he_o know_v who_o they_o be_v 2._o and_o still_o the_o question_n recur_v what_o be_v it_o that_o must_v be_v particular_o believe_v to_o essentiate_v the_o church_n for_o if_o he_o know_v not_o that_o he_o can_v know_v that_o he_o know_v what_o the_o church_n be_v 3._o and_o when_o that_o be_v do_v it_o seem_v he_o must_v know_v which_o be_v that_o church_n consider_v in_o existence_n as_o different_a from_o all_o heresy_n and_o other_o society_n but_o by_o this_o method_n our_o difficulty_n be_v multiply_v 1._o how_o shall_v i_o be_v sure_a that_o this_o church_n do_v not_o deceive_v i_o in_o say_v that_o this_o and_o not_o that_o be_v god_n word_n be_v this_o by_o a_o act_n of_o knowledge_n or_o of_o divine_a faith_n if_o of_o knowledge_n what_o evidence_n prove_v it_o if_o of_o faith_n than_o i_o must_v believe_v god_n before_o i_o can_v believe_v he_o that_o be_v i_o must_v believe_v that_o this_o be_v his_o revelation_n and_o true_a that_o the_o roman
denominate_v from_o the_o prime_n or_o second_o efficient_a of_o the_o revelation_n it_o be_v the_o belief_n of_o god_n and_o of_o christ_n as_o mediator_n and_o not_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o so_o god_n own_o veracity_n and_o not_o man_n be_v the_o objectum_fw-la formale_a fidei_fw-la divinae_fw-la 4._o but_o why_o may_v not_o a_o subordinate_a humane_a faith_n be_v conjoin_v with_o this_o and_o so_o we_o believe_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o messiah_n at_o once_o 1._o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o god_n 2._o of_o christ_n as_o man_n 3_o and_o of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n 1._o do_v not_o the_o union_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n with_o the_o humane_a make_v christ_n as_o man_n to_o be_v credible_a if_o so_o why_o shall_v we_o not_o believe_v he_o 2._o do_v not_o the_o sanctify_a work_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o divine_a inspiration_n join_v to_o it_o make_v the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n credible_a person_n if_o so_o why_o shall_v we_o not_o believe_v they_o 3._o do_v not_o the_o miracle_n which_o they_o wrought_v render_v the_o person_n and_o their_o testimony_n credible_a together_o with_o the_o circumstance_n of_o their_o be_v eye-witness_n and_o suchlike_a 4._o be_v not_o every_o honest_a man_n credible_a according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o his_o skill_n and_o honesty_n 5._o do_v not_o every_o man_n know_v that_o there_o may_v be_v many_o efficient_a cause_n conjoin_v in_o produce_v one_o effect_n may_v not_o faith_n now_o be_v wrought_v by_o the_o preacher_n word_n and_o spirit_n why_o else_o do_v christ_n say_v to_o paul_n act_v 26._o 17_o 18_o i_o send_v thou_o to_o open_v their_o eye_n and_o turn_v they_o etc._n etc._n and_o paul_n direct_v timothy_n to_o save_v himself_o and_o those_o that_o hear_v he_o why_o may_v not_o believe_v god_n believe_v christ_n as_o man_n and_o believe_v peter_n and_o john_n etc._n etc._n that_o see_v he_o rise_v be_v conjunct_a cause_n of_o our_o faith_n in_o christ_n resurrection_n if_o they_o may_v not_o produce_v one_o faith_n at_o least_o they_o may_v produce_v three_o faith_n unite_v by_o conjunction_n but_o will_v one_o ever_o have_v expect_v this_o from_o a_o jesuit_n or_o roman_a priest_n remember_v reader_n that_o divine_a belief_n and_o a_o belief_n of_o the_o church_n council_n pope_n or_o priest_n be_v not_o to_o be_v take_v for_o conjunct_a cause_n of_o our_o believe_v the_o gospel_n or_o christian_a faith_n in_o this_o man_n opinion_n but_o he_o say_v though_o the_o prophet_n be_v a_o humane_a person_n yet_o he_o speak_v when_o he_o be_v inspire_v by_o god_n not_o by_o humane_a but_o divine_a authority_n god_n speak_v by_o his_o mouth_n ans._n it_o be_v veracity_n that_o be_v the_o thing_n that_o we_o now_o speak_v of_o and_o be_v the_o authority_n in_o question_n and_o do_v not_o god_n veracity_n give_v veracity_n to_o the_o speaker_n and_o use_v it_o do_v god_n speak_v by_o prophet_n and_o christ_n humanity_n as_o through_o a_o inanimate_a pipe_n or_o whistle_n or_o as_o by_o balaam_n ass_n do_v he_o make_v no_o use_n of_o the_o reason_n and_o honesty_n of_o the_o speaker_n nor_o make_v they_o more_o know_v and_o more_o honest_a true_a and_o careful_a that_o they_o may_v be_v the_o fit_a to_o be_v believe_v be_v this_o roman_a divinity_n why_o then_o do_v the_o apostle_n so_o oft_o protest_v that_o they_o speak_v the_o truth_n and_o lie_v not_o even_o of_o that_o which_o they_o have_v see_v and_o hear_v will_v the_o gospel_n have_v be_v equal_o credible_a to_o we_o if_o all_o the_o witness_n have_v in_o other_o matter_n be_v knave_n and_o liar_n 2._o reader_n judge_v whether_o those_o that_o accuse_v the_o roman_a clergy_n of_o fanaticism_n and_o enthusiasm_n do_v they_o any_o wrong_n while_o they_o think_v that_o god_n make_v they_o infallible_a by_o such_o inspiration_n as_o make_v no_o use_n of_o their_o reason_n learning_n or_o honesty_n and_o read_v but_o what_o their_o own_o historian_n say_v of_o fifty_o pope_n together_o beside_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o of_o the_o nine_o and_o ten_o century_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o the_o pope_n that_o be_v lad_n and_o can_v not_o read_v mass_n but_o be_v illiterate_a read_v what_o their_o council_n have_v say_v of_o some_o who_o they_o depose_v as_o inhuman_a monster_n and_o judge_v whether_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o believe_v that_o any_o inspiration_n use_v those_o man_n as_o infallible_a deliverer_n of_o that_o christian_a faith_n and_o see_v here_o why_o it_o be_v that_o they_o think_v wit_n and_o honesty_n no_o more_o necessary_a in_o pope_n or_o council_n if_o god_n use_v they_o but_o as_o a_o organ-pipe_n or_o trumpet_n pag._n 18._o when_o he_o be_v urge_v to_o tell_v i_o what_o it_o be_v that_o be_v the_o necessary_a belief_n of_o their_o church_n 21._o which_o must_v make_v a_o man_n a_o member_n of_o it_o he_o again_o bid_v i_o tell_v he_o what_o point_v i_o make_v essential_a to_o a_o christian_a and_o i_o shall_v save_v he_o the_o labour_n ans._n and_o be_v we_o indeed_o agree_v and_o yet_o do_v they_o writeso_fw-mi many_o volume_n to_o the_o contrary_a reader_n i_o take_v he_o at_o his_o word_n i_o have_v say_v that_o it_o be_v the_o belief_n and_o consent_n to_o the_o baptismal_a covenant_n that_o be_v the_o constitutive_a essence_n of_o a_o christian._n remember_v this_o when_o they_o jest_v at_o fundamental_o and_o tell_v we_o of_o damnation_n if_o we_o believe_v not_o their_o council_n and_o the_o country-priest_n that_o be_v the_o reporter_n of_o they_o remember_v now_o the_o extent_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n that_o it_o reach_v to_o all_o that_o believe_v and_o consent_v to_o the_o baptismal_a covenant_n but_o will_v these_o waver_a man_n long_o stand_v to_o this_o and_o confess_v their_o sect_n to_o be_v but_o a_o four_o or_o three_o part_n of_o the_o church_n but_o perhaps_o they_o will_v say_v that_o word_n not_o understand_v be_v no_o true_a faith_n we_o be_v yet_o to_o seek_v what_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n do_v mean_a and_o comprehend_v answ._n these_o ignorances_n or_o artifices_fw-la have_v too_o long_o abuse_v unstudy_v man_n it_o be_v not_o now_o the_o unsearchable_a truth_n of_o man_n subjective_n faith_n or_o internal_a act_n which_o we_o dispute_v of_o but_o it_o be_v of_o necessary_a objective_n faith_n or_o what_o ex_fw-la parte_fw-la objecti_fw-la be_v essential_o necessary_a to_o true_a subjective_n faith_n in_o case_n it_o be_v true_o believe_v which_o god_n only_o can_v tell_v and_o i_o say_v 1._o it_o be_v no_o mere_a word_n speak_v more_o or_o less_o which_o can_v prove_v to_o another_o the_o sincerity_n of_o the_o speaker_n belief_n of_o they_o 2._o but_o the_o word_n of_o the_o baptismal_a profession_n and_o covenant_n if_o sincere_o believe_v contain_v all_o essential_a to_o the_o christian_a faith_n 3._o and_o for_o more_o or_o few_o word_n i_o say_v that_o the_o more_o understand_v any_o man_n have_v the_o more_o full_o and_o easy_o he_o may_v understand_v the_o sense_n of_o those_o word_n though_o general_a and_o few_o but_o to_o a_o ignorant_a person_n there_o must_v be_v many_o word_n and_o oft_o repeat_v to_o make_v he_o understand_v the_o same_o thing_n which_o the_o other_o do_v by_o these_o few_o and_o must_v we_o therefore_o have_v as_o many_o symbol_n of_o christianity_n as_o there_o be_v various_a degree_n of_o understanding_n 4._o and_o the_o church_n have_v in_o its_o best_a time_n take_v up_o with_o the_o creed_n as_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o baptismal_a faith_n and_o if_o it_o now_o contain_v any_o word_n more_o than_o essential_a that_o cross_v not_o its_o use_n which_o be_v to_o be_v a_o just_a and_o satisfactory_a explication_n of_o that_o baptismal_a faith_n which_o have_v nothing_o but_o the_o essential_o and_o according_o till_o faith_n and_o piety_n degenerate_v into_o opinion_n and_o tyranny_n baptise_a person_n be_v account_v christian_n and_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o as_o oblige_v to_o live_v as_o christ_n disciple_n in_o love_n to_o one_o another_o it_o be_v none_o but_o christ_n himself_o who_o institute_v baptism_n as_o our_o christen_n to_o be_v the_o symbol_n and_o badge_n of_o his_o disciple_n pag._n 19_o when_o i_o have_v press_v he_o to_o a_o particular_a answer_n and_o tell_v he_o what_o will_v follow_v 22._o upon_o the_o answer_n which_o i_o suppose_v he_o may_v make_v he_o tell_v i_o that_o divine_n have_v a_o hundred_o time_n tell_v we_o that_o some_o thing_n must_v be_v believe_v necessitate_v praecepti_fw-la and_o some_o thing_n necessitate_v medii_fw-la ans._n we_o have_v hear_v some_o thing_n some_o thing_n so_o oft_o that_o we_o will_v fain_o know_v what_o thing_n at_o last_o be_v necessary_a ut_fw-la media_fw-la reader_n if_o these_o writer_n must_v not_o be_v ashamed_a of_o their_o
be_v christian_n be_v this_o a_o satisfactory_a answer_v and_o yet_o if_o you_o will_v know_v the_o truth_n from_o their_o common_a write_n the_o faith_n of_o their_o church_n contain_v these_o great_a body_n 1._o all_o that_o be_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o the_o apocrypha_fw-la 2._o all_o the_o decree_n of_o their_o general_a council_n if_o not_o also_o the_o provincial_n and_o pope_n decretal_n that_o be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la 3._o all_o their_o unwritten_a tradition_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la which_o they_o have_v yet_o to_o bring_v forth_o as_o need_n require_v and_o do_v you_o not_o approve_v his_o modesty_n that_o say_v if_o any_o such_o be_v find_v that_o believe_v all_o this_o 2._o the_o second_o sort_n of_o their_o church-member_n be_v all_z who_o believe_v explicit_o all_o article_n and_o whatever_o belong_v to_o they_o in_o particular_a by_o reason_n of_o their_o respective_a office_n ans._n but_o he_o tell_v you_o not_o a_o word_n what_o article_n these_o be_v nor_o what_o belong_v to_o their_o office_n whether_o it_o be_v all_o the_o article_n of_o all_o the_o creed_n or_o also_o of_o their_o council_n decree_n or_o when_o it_o shall_v be_v know_v what_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v about_o their_o office_n and_o be_v here_o any_o notice_n how_o to_o know_v a_o member_n of_o their_o church_n any_o more_o than_o in_o the_o former_a he_o that_o believe_v all_o that_o he_o shall_v believe_v be_v a_o christian_n but_o be_v there_o any_o such_o and_o what_o be_v that_o all_o and_o how_o shall_v we_o know_v they_o 3._o his_o three_o sort_n of_o member_n be_v those_o who_o so_o believe_v all_o thing_n necessary_a necessitate_v medii_fw-la vel_fw-la praecepti_fw-la extend_v to_o all_o the_o adult_n ans._n and_o what_o be_v this_o but_o the_o same_o again_o we_o know_v none_o but_o the_o adult_n that_o be_v to_o believe_v and_o so_o here_o we_o be_v tell_v that_o all_o man_n that_o believe_v all_o thing_n command_v be_v christian_n we_o be_v tell_v this_o before_o but_o it_o be_v with_o if_o any_o such_o be_v to_o be_v find_v and_o who_o know_v by_o this_o what_o your_o all_o be_v when_o we_o find_v man_n that_o do_v all_o command_v and_o sin_v not_o we_o will_v hope_v to_o find_v man_n that_o know_v all_o reveal_v and_o have_v no_o ignorance_n yet_o here_o be_v no_o visible_a church_n 4._o his_o four_o sort_n be_v all_z those_o who_o believe_v in_o that_o manner_n all_o thing_n necessary_a necessitate_v medii_fw-la according_a to_o the_o first_o opinion_n of_o the_o more_o ancient_a doctor_n but_o what_o those_o thing_n be_v we_o be_v not_o yet_o tell_v but_o five_o word_n set_v down_o with_o a_o etc._n etc._n and_o be_v here_o yet_o a_o word_n to_o satisfy_v any_o man_n of_o reason_n what_o their_o faith_n be_v or_o what_o christianity_n be_v or_o what_o make_v a_o member_n of_o their_o church_n or_o be_v the_o bond_n of_o union_n but_o reader_n have_v god_n leave_v we_o so_o much_o in_o the_o dark_a be_v christianity_n any_o thing_n or_o nothing_o if_o something_o have_v it_o not_o a_o essence_n which_o may_v be_v define_v be_v this_o all_o our_o notice_n of_o it_o that_o man_n that_o know_v all_o that_o god_n have_v reveal_v and_o believe_v it_o be_v christian_n or_o such_o as_o believe_v five_o article_n &_o cetera_fw-la judge_v now_o whether_o their_o church_n be_v not_o invisible_a and_o if_o any_o little_a part_n of_o it_o be_v visible_a what_o be_v that_o to_o the_o rest_n or_o to_o that_o visibility_n of_o particular_a member_n he_o tell_v we_o these_o be_v almost_o all_o christian_n and_o yet_o question_v whether_o any_o of_o the_o first_o be_v find_v and_o the_o rest_n be_v no_o more_o to_o be_v find_v than_o they_o 5._o and_o his_o five_o sort_n he_o confess_v himself_o to_o be_v uncertain_a which_o yet_o it_o be_v doubt_v be_v no_o small_a part_n that_o go_v for_o papist_n and_o note_v i_o pray_v you_o that_o it_o be_v the_o present_a church_n which_o they_o use_v to_o approach_v to_o for_o necessary_a resolution_n and_o the_o recentior_n be_v more_o the_o present_a church_n than_o the_o ancient_n and_o according_a to_o these_o 1._o their_o church_n be_v confess_o doubtful_a or_o unknown_a as_o to_o most_o or_o multitude_n of_o member_n 2._o and_o note_n that_o their_o article_n be_v but_o two_o that_o god_n be_v and_o that_o he_o reward_v work_n all_o the_o common_a heathen_n of_o the_o world_n and_o all_o the_o mahometan_n be_v of_o the_o papist_n faith_n and_o church_n according_a to_o this_o opinion_n 3._o but_o mark_v reader_n another_o desperate_a corruption_n that_o baptism_n must_v concur_v with_o these_o two_o article_n o_o horrid_a corruption_n of_o christianity_n itself_o be_v this_o antiquity_n and_o tradition_n do_v the_o christian_a church_n use_v to_o baptize_v man_n that_o believe_v neither_o in_o jesus_n christ_n nor_o the_o holy_a ghost_n if_o they_o do_v but_o believe_v a_o god_n and_o a_o rewarder_n do_v you_o baptize_v such_o in_o your_o church_n i_o suppose_v even_o pope_n stephen_n himself_o will_v have_v be_v for_o the_o re-baptining_a of_o such_o reader_n if_o one_o of_o we_o have_v charge_v such_o doctrine_n on_o the_o papist_n as_o this_o their_o champion_n do_v shall_v we_o not_o have_v be_v think_v to_o slander_v they_o viz._n that_o their_o late_a doctor_n hold_v that_o all_o that_o believe_v explicit_o but_o a_o god_n and_o a_o rewarder_n and_o be_v baptize_v be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o consequent_o that_o all_o that_o believe_v but_o this_o much_o shall_v be_v baptize_v that_o be_v all_o the_o mahometan_n and_o almost_o all_o the_o heathen_n in_o the_o world_n and_o be_v baptism_n and_o the_o creed_n come_v to_o this_o but_o i_o confess_v if_o the_o world_n be_v persuade_v of_o this_o the_o pope_n can_v make_v his_o use_n of_o it_o for_o when_o he_o be_v once_o take_v for_o governor_n of_o all_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n if_o he_o can_v but_o prove_v all_o the_o world_n to_o be_v the_o church_n it_o follow_v that_o he_o be_v governor_n of_o all_o the_o world_n and_o what_o need_v they_o now_o their_o feign_a embassy_n and_o submission_n to_o prove_v the_o abassine_n armenian_n and_o greek_n to_o be_v of_o their_o church_n when_o heathen_n and_o mahometan_n be_v prove_v of_o it_o and_o yet_o be_v protestant_n no_n part_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o a_o live_a body_n may_v be_v define_v by_o head_n shoulder_n arm_n though_o there_o be_v a_o doubt_n among_o philosopher_n whether_o hair_n humour_n etc._n etc._n be_v animate_v or_o part_n ans._n but_o 1._o it_o be_v know_v then_o that_o there_o be_v visible_o head_n and_o shoulder_n etc._n etc._n but_o you_o tell_v we_o not_o how_o to_o know_v any_o individual_a person_n to_o be_v visible_a member_n of_o your_o church_n to_o tell_v we_o that_o there_o be_v some_o man_n that_o hold_v all_o that_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o hold_v make_v none_o visible_a while_o we_o be_v not_o tell_v either_o what_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v or_o by_o what_o profession_n or_o proof_n it_o must_v be_v know_v that_o they_o do_v so_o when_o we_o tell_v you_o that_o sincere_a justify_v faith_n and_o love_n do_v prove_v true_a christian_n and_o that_o such_o there_o be_v it_o be_v agree_v that_o this_o prove_v but_o a_o church_n as_o invisible_a or_o unknown_a to_o we_o because_o we_o know_v not_o who_o have_v this_o sincerity_n so_o be_v it_o when_o you_o tell_v we_o that_o there_o be_v man_n that_o believe_v all_o that_o be_v necessary_a for_o till_o it_o be_v know_v what_o that_o be_v no_o profession_n can_v thereby_o prove_v they_o christian_n 2._o but_o what_o if_o you_o have_v tell_v we_o how_o to_o know_v those_o man_n that_o be_v certain_a or_o eminent_a member_n of_o your_o church_n be_v it_o nothing_o to_o you_o to_o leave_v all_o the_o world_n beside_o almost_o uncertain_a whether_o they_o be_v in_o the_o church_n or_o not_o how_o know_v you_o who_o to_o admit_v to_o your_o sacramental_a communion_n or_o to_o use_v as_o a_o christian_a when_o a_o congregation_n of_o many_o thousand_o person_n call_v papist_n meet_v you_o can_v tell_v how_o many_o of_o these_o be_v of_o your_o church_n and_o yet_o you_o give_v they_o the_o eucharist_n and_o it_o seem_v by_o you_o that_o they_o must_v be_v baptise_a though_o you_o know_v not_o after_o whether_o they_o be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n remember_v reader_n that_o our_o question_n be_v not_o what_o mercy_n god_n show_v to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n nor_o whether_o any_o out_o of_o the_o christian_a church_n be_v save_v but_o it_o be_v what_o be_v the_o faith_n which_o be_v essential_a to_o a_o member_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n and_o whether_o papist_n make_v it_o not_o uncertain_a and_o whether_o he_o
separate_v from_o that_o parish-church_n may_v yet_o be_v 〈◊〉_d member_n of_o the_o church_n universal_a while_o he_o separate_v not_o from_o it_o but_o i_o see_v that_o guiliel_n de_fw-la sancto_fw-la amore_fw-la and_o such_o other_o have_v great_a reason_n to_o condemn_v the_o friar_n and_o watson_n and_o such_o other_o the_o jesuit_n than_o we_o know_v of_o i_o note_v also_o the_o difficulty_n how_o we_o shall_v know_v the_o authority_n of_o every_o parish-priest_n bishop_n archbishop_n patriarch_n and_o pope_n and_o 1._o in_o a_o country_n where_o order_n have_v ordinary_o be_v forge_v to_o this_o he_o answer_v as_o much_o as_o you_o can_v be_v assure_v of_o any_o be_v pastor_n of_o such_o a_o church_n or_o bishop_n or_o justice_n etc._n etc._n a●…s_n 1._o if_o you_o prove_v it_o a_o duty_n to_o believe_v and_o obey_v every_o such_o deceiver_n that_o have_v no_o authority_n we_o will_v not_o believe_v till_o you_o prove_v it_o that_o to_o do_v otherwise_o do_v unchurch_n we_o 2._o and_o if_o two_o or_o three_o claim_n authority_n over_o we_o at_o once_o as_o they_o do_v in_o the_o papacy_n about_o forty_o year_n together_o be_v we_o cut_v off_o from_o christ_n if_o we_o receive_v not_o both_o or_o how_o shall_v we_o know_v which_o if_o either_o will_v serve_v than_o they_o that_o take_v john_n of_o constantinople_n for_o universal_a bishop_n be_v as_o much_o in_o the_o church_n as_o they_o that_o receive_v pope_n boniface_n as_o such_o and_o they_o that_o follow_v dioscorus_n at_o alexandria_n be_v orthodox_n as_o they_o that_o adhere_v to_o proterius_n etc._n etc._n be_v it_o no_o matter_n who_o it_o be_v so_o we_o think_v he_o to_o be_v the_o right_a why_o then_o do_v you_o deny_v our_o english_a clergy_n when_o we_o judge_v they_o to_o have_v the_o true_a authority_n 2._o i_o ask_v what_o if_o we_o be_v ignorant_a whether_o the_o ordainer_n have_v intentionem_fw-la ordinandi_fw-la how_o shall_v we_o be_v sure_a of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o ordain_v he_o answer_v as_o sure_a as_o you_o can_v be_v that_o you_o be_v the_o lawful_a child_n of_o your_o parent_n who_o can_v not_o be_v true_o marry_v without_o intention_n ans._n this_o be_v new_a doctrine_n they_o that_o speak_v the_o word_n and_o do_v the_o action_n which_o proper_o signify_v a_o true_a intention_n and_o do_v profess_v it_o do_v thereby_o mutual_o oblige_v themselves_o in_o the_o relation_n of_o husband_n and_o wife_n to_o each_o other_o and_o they_o that_o true_o so_o oblige_v themselves_o be_v true_o though_o sinful_o marry_v for_o what_o be_v marriage_n but_o such_o a_o mutual_a oblige_a contract_n they_o be_v true_o my_o parent_n and_o i_o owe_v they_o obedience_n whatever_o their_o intention_n be_v but_o you_o hold_v a_o man_n to_o be_v no_o priest_n that_o be_v not_o ordain_v ex_fw-la ●…entione_n ordinandi_fw-la and_o our_o salvation_n to_o lie_v on_o our_o obey_v he_o as_o a_o priest_n who_o be_v none_o my_o four_o question_n be_v how_o the_o people_n that_o dwell_v in_o other_o country_n can_v know_v whether_o the_o 〈◊〉_d priest_n prelate_n or_o pope_n have_v necessary_a election_n and_o ordination_n to_o which_o he_o say_v w●…en_o it_o be_v public_o allow_v in_o the_o church_n witness_v to_o be_v perform_v according_a to_o canonical_a prescription_n by_o those_o that_o be_v present_a and_o derive_v to_o the_o people_n without_o contradiction_n by_o public_a fame_n ans._n 1._o this_o allow_v the_o ministry_n in_o ethiopia_n armenia_n moscovie_n gr●…ece_n as_o much_o as_o the_o roman_a for_o it_o be_v public_o allow_v and_o attest_v and_o bring_v to_o the_o people_n by_o uncontradict_v fame_n and_o so_o be_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n to_o all_o that_o hear_v not_o your_o contradiction_n 2_o but_o with_o rome_n the_o case_n be_v otherwise_o one_o part_n of_o the_o church_n have_v public_o allow_v one_o pope_n and_o all_o his_o clergy_n and_o another_o part_n reject_v he_o and_o allow_v another_o and_o his_o clergy_n and_o public_a fame_n have_v contradict_v one_o party_n 3._o and_o what_o can_v fame_n say_v to_o we_o in_o england_n of_o the_o election_n or_o ordination_n make_v at_o rome_n of_o a_o pope_n prelate_n or_o parish-priest_n when_o we_o hear_v not_o any_o witness_n of_o it_o 4._o and_o how_o can_v we_o expect_v contradiction_n of_o a_o action_n do_v a_o thousand_o mile_n off_o which_o none_o near_o know_v of_o 5._o and_o yet_o how_o few_o priest_n or_o prelate_n be_v they_o who_o authority_n fame_n publish_v without_o contradiction_n do_v not_o protestant_n contradict_v the_o authority_n of_o your_o priest_n and_o most_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n the_o authority_n of_o your_o pope_n my_o five_o question_n be_v if_o you_o tell_v i_o your_o own_o opinion_n of_o the_o sufficient_a mean_n to_o know_v the_o pope_n or_o priest_n authority_n how_o shall_v i_o know_v that_o you_o be_v not_o deceive_v unless_o a_o council_n bid_v desined_a 25._o it_o sufficient_a to_o this_o he_o say_v that_o the_o order_n prescribe_v in_o the_o canon_n law_n and_o universal_o receive_v be_v sufficient_a for_o this_o without_o decree_n of_o general_a council_n for_o they_o be_v no_o point_n of_o faith_n but_o of_o order_n and_o discipline_n whereof_o a_o moral_a certainty_n and_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n be_v sufficient_a ans._n 1._o be_v this_o moral_a certainty_n true_a certaint_v or_o uncertainty_n if_o true_a certainty_n it_o have_v its_o moral_a ascertain_v evidence_n and_o what_o be_v those_o 2._o who_o be_v the_o maker_n of_o this_o canon_n law_n if_o not_o general_a council_n how_o shall_v we_o know_v their_o authority_n if_o the_o pope_n and_o cardinal_n how_o shall_v we_o know_v whether_o those_o of_o e._n g._n stephen_n sergius_n or_o formosus_fw-la be_v the_o authentic_a one_o and_o so_o of_o many_o other_o contradictory_n one_o if_o a_o general_n council_n damn_v and_o depose_v e._n g._n eugenius_n the_o four_o as_o a_o heretic_n etc._n etc._n and_o he_o make_v canon_n after_o how_o shall_v we_o know_v that_o they_o be_v authoritative_a 3._o but_o be_v your_o matter_n of_o order_n and_o discipline_n no_o matter_n of_o faith_n then_o god_n have_v not_o bind_v we_o to_o believe_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o universal_a bishop_n or_o pastor_n or_o that_o rome_n have_v any_o authority_n over_o the_o world_n or_o other_o christian_a church_n or_o that_o your_o priest_n be_v the_o true_a minister_n of_o christ_n and_o have_v any_o authority_n over_o we_o or_o that_o the_o mass_n be_v to_o be_v celebrate_v etc._n etc._n but_o either_o these_o be_v matter_n of_o divine_a or_o humane_a law_n if_o man_n only_o command_v they_o how_o come_v our_o christianity_n and_o salvation_n to_o be_v lay_v on_o they_o what_o man_n command_v man_n may_v abrogate_v unless_o extrinsic_a accident_n hinder_v if_o god_n command_v they_o do_v god_n command_v any_o thing_n which_o he_o bind_v we_o not_o to_o believe_v to_o be_v our_o duty_n many_o thing_n may_v be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la reveal_v which_o be_v not_o the_o moribus_fw-la nor_o to_o be_v do_v but_o nothing_o be_v by_o god_n command_v to_o be_v do_v which_o be_v not_o first_o to_o be_v know_v or_o believe_v to_o be_v duty_n 4._o if_o it_o be_v no_o matter_n of_o faith_n how_o to_o know_v that_o your_o election_n and_o ordination_n be_v true_a than_o it_o be_v no_o matter_n of_o faith_n that_o you_o be_v true_a pastor_n or_o have_v any_o authority_n because_o without_o true_a election_n and_o ordination_n it_o be_v not_o so_o and_o if_o so_o then_o it_o be_v no_o heresy_n to_o believe_v that_o you_o be_v all_o deceiver_n 5._o your_o authority_n or_o decree_n below_o that_o of_o pope_n and_o general_n council_n pretend_v to_o no_o infallible_a certainty_n upon_o this_o it_o seem_v your_o church_n be_v build_v and_o into_o uncertainty_n its_o authority_n resolve_v and_o yet_o from_o this_o we_o must_v fetch_v our_o certainty_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o your_o way_n and_o be_v not_o the_o gospel_n than_o make_v uncertain_a by_o you_o which_o must_v be_v believe_v on_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o uncertain_a ministry_n yea_o and_o be_v not_o council_n uncertain_a which_o consist_v of_o such_o a_o ministry_n 6._o it_o be_v a_o vanity_n to_o pretend_v that_o your_o canon_n law_n be_v universal_o receive_v most_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n receive_v but_o part_n of_o it_o and_o much_o no_o part_n at_o all_o unless_o you_o call_v the_o scripture_n the_o canon_n law_n 7._o if_o your_o canon_n law_n be_v so_o universal_o receive_v and_o sufficient_a then_o when_o that_o law_n be_v receive_v into_o england_n england_n must_v be_v burn_v as_o a_o land_n of_o heretic_n for_o that_o be_v part_n of_o your_o law_n and_o so_o your_o ministry_n and_o our_o burn_a as_o heretic_n have_v the_o same_o authority_n my_o next_o question_n be_v if_o i_o culpable_o be_v
all_o man_n that_o believe_v a_o god_n believe_v he_o to_o be_v true_a and_o no_o liar_n and_o so_o w._n i._o make_v none_o but_o atheist_n to_o be_v heretic_n to_o this_o he_o answer_v w._n j._n there_o be_v a_o twofold_a deny_v of_o god_n one_o formal_a and_o direct_a the_o other_o virtual_a and_o indirect_a atheist_n be_v guilty_a of_o the_o first_o heretic_n of_o the_o second_o this_o i_o oblige_v myself_o to_o prove_v whosoever_o obstinate_o contradict_v any_o truth_n reveal_v from_o god_n as_o all_o heretic_n do_v some_o or_o other_o of_o they_o they_o sinful_o and_o wilful_o affirm_v that_o what_o god_n have_v reveal_v be_v not_o true_a and_o consequent_o that_o god_n be_v a_o liar_n and_o by_o that_o destroy_v as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v the_o very_a essence_n of_o god_n r._n b._n here_o be_v little_a but_o novelty_n and_o deceit_n 1._o it_o be_v deceit_n to_o call_v that_o a_o deny_v of_o god_n in_o a_o controversy_n of_o such_o moment_n whatever_o you_o may_v do_v rhetorical_o in_o a_o oration_n which_o you_o confess_v yourself_o be_v not_o a_o deny_v he_o for_o you_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o formal_a but_o a_o virtual_a deny_v he_o and_o that_o be_v true_o no_o actual_a deny_v he_o for_o forma_fw-la that_fw-mi nomen_fw-la &_o esse_fw-la boy_n will_v deride_v you_o if_o you_o deny_v this_o if_o you_o object_v paul_n word_n tit._n 1._o they_o confess_v he_o in_o word_n but_o in_o their_o work_n they_o deny_v he_o i_o answer_v that_o they_o deny_v he_o formal_o by_o their_o work_n for_o those_o work_v signify_v that_o their_o mind_n do_v not_o formal_o believe_v god_n to_o be_v god_n indeed_o according_a to_o his_o essentiality_n 2._o it_o be_v novelty_n and_o deceit_n to_o affirm_v and_o stout_o undertake_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o deny_v of_o one_o of_o the_o proposition_n from_o which_o the_o conclusion_n must_v arise_v be_v virtual_o a_o deny_v of_o both_o e._n g._n whatever_o be_v god_n word_n be_v true_a but_o the_o story_n of_o bell_n and_o the_o dragon_n and_o of_o the_o angel_n in_o tobit_n say_v he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o ananias_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o naphthali_n and_o that_o the_o entrails_n of_o a_o fish_n will_v drive_v away_o all_o devil_n that_o they_o shall_v never_o return_v etc._n etc._n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n may_v not_o a_o man_n firm_o believe_v the_o major_n that_o take_v the_o minor_a for_o a_o lie_n and_o suppose_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n say_v that_o i_o be_o obstinate_a my_o reason_n be_v 1._o angel_n be_v not_o bear_v of_o man_n 2._o christ_n say_v this_o kind_n go_v not_o out_o but_o by_o fast_v and_o prayer_n etc._n etc._n so_o that_o i_o must_v take_v christ_n for_o a_o liar_n if_o i_o take_v not_o tobit_n to_o be_v false_a may_v not_o i_o be_v obstinate_a in_o this_o and_o yet_o not_o deny_v that_o all_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v true_a if_o the_o manichee_n tell_v i_o that_o the_o gospel_n of_o nicodemus_n and_o of_o saint_n thomas_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o papist_n that_o the_o apostolical_a canon_n and_o constitution_n and_o the_o itinerary_n of_o peter_n be_v write_v by_o clemens_n be_v obstinate_a unbelief_n of_o this_o a_o deny_v that_o god_n be_v true_a your_o sufficient_a proposal_n be_v that_o of_o your_o church_n a_o general_n council_n be_v your_o high_a proposer_n with_o the_o pope_n i_o find_v that_o the_o council_n at_o constance_n and_o basil_n and_o pisa_n say_v one_o thing_n and_o that_o at_o lateran_n and_o florence_n say_v the_o contrary_a and_o i_o obstinate_o refuse_v to_o believe_v they_o both_o may_v i_o not_o yet_o firm_o believe_v that_o god_n be_v true_a you_o be_v not_o god_n and_o very_o i_o have_v more_o reason_n to_o suspect_v you_o than_o god_n the_o countryman_n that_o never_o read_v council_n nor_o travel_v to_o rome_n know_v nothing_o of_o your_o matter_n but_o by_o his_o parish-priest_n if_o he_o know_v this_o priest_n to_o be_v a_o common_a whoremonger_n and_o liar_n may_v he_o not_o suspect_v he_o without_o deny_v god_n but_o if_o you_o can_v prove_v what_o you_o undertake_v it_o be_v the_o sad_a with_o you_o that_o can_v triumph_v in_o sentence_v yourselves_o as_o heretic_n to_o hell_n e._n g._n whatever_o be_v god_n word_n be_v true_a but_o it_o be_v god_n word_n that_o the_o lord_n supper_n shall_v be_v administer_v in_o both_o kind_n bread_n and_o wine_n this_o do_v in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o and_o that_o it_o be_v bread_n after_o the_o consecration_n 1_o cor._n 11._o and_o that_o it_o be_v better_a to_o pray_v in_o a_o know_a tongue_n than_o in_o a_o unknown_a 1_o cor._n 14._o and_o that_o they_o know_v not_o what_o manner_n of_o spirit_n they_o be_v of_o who_o will_v have_v the_o resister_n of_o christ_n apostle_n and_o of_o christ_n himself_o consume_v with_o fire_n and_o that_o the_o clergy_n must_v not_o lord_n it_o over_o god_n heritage_n but_o as_o servant_n to_o all_o rule_v they_o willing_o and_o not_o by_o constraint_n etc._n etc._n ergo_fw-la this_o be_v all_o true_a and_o whoever_o deny_v this_o truth_n of_o god_n indirect_o deny_v god_n essence_n and_o make_v he_o a_o liar_n but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n deny_v all_o these_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v heretic_n blasphemer_n and_o liar_n and_o all_o this_o be_v sufficient_o reveal_v for_o it_o be_v plain_o write_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 3._o note_v reader_n that_o such_o a_o contradiction_n of_o any_o truth_n reveal_v by_o god_n do_v make_v a_o man_n a_o heretic_n o_o then_o what_o abundance_n of_o heretic_n be_v in_o the_o world_n what_o one_o man_n can_v say_v that_o he_o do_v not_o contradict_v some_o truth_n reveal_v by_o god_n by_o nature_n or_o scripture_n or_o both_o every_o man_n mind_n and_o will_n be_v deprave_v and_o be_v so_o have_v some_o degree_n of_o obstinacy_n in_o resist_v some_o truth_n of_o god_n and_o so_o all_o man_n in_o the_o world_n as_o well_o as_o the_o obstinate_o erroneous_a papist_n be_v heretic_n not_o only_a papist_n that_o will_v believe_v neither_o the_o scripture_n tradition_n reason_n nor_o all_o man_n sense_n that_o there_o be_v bread_n after_o consecration_n but_o any_o one_o that_o do_v not_o believe_v who_o be_v the_o father_n of_o arphaxad_n e._n g._n or_o any_o point_n of_o genealogy_n or_o of_o chronology_n or_o differ_v number_n in_o king_n and_o chronicle_n ezra_n and_o nehemiah_n mat._n 1._o and_o luk._n 3_o etc._n etc._n or_o that_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o every_o word_n in_o judith_n tobit_n etc._n etc._n be_v god_n word_n be_v all_o heretic_n and_o denier_n of_o god_n essence_n nor_o do_v he_o except_v any_o age_n of_o person_n so_o that_o if_o a_o schoolboy_n shall_v but_o obstinate_o deny_v to_o believe_v his_o master_n about_o a_o tradition_n or_o a_o scripture-name_n or_o number_n he_o be_v a_o heretic_n the_o council_n of_o basil_n reveal_v the_o sinless_a conception_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o yet_o the_o papist_n that_o deny_v it_o be_v not_o account_v heretic_n and_o what_o show_n be_v there_o of_o this_o consequence_n the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n 2._o of_o arminum_fw-la of_o lateran_n of_o nice_a 2_o of_o florence_n of_o constance_n basil_n trent_n may_v lie_v ergo_fw-la god_n be_v a_o liar_n heretic_n shall_v be_v soft_a in_o define_v heresy_n i_o next_o instance_a what_o if_o a_o man_n deny_v that_o there_o be_v a_o heaven_n hell_n resurrection_n and_o also_o the_o 5._o revelation_n of_o these_o and_o yet_o deny_v not_o the_o veracity_n of_o god_n no_o nor_o of_o the_o church_n be_v this_o no_o heretic_n he_o answer_v no_o if_o not_o sufficient_o propound_v to_o he_o as_o reveal_v from_o god_n but_o that_o proposition_n must_v be_v make_v by_o the_o church_n and_o as_o long_o as_o he_o believe_v the_o infallible_a veracity_n of_o the_o church_n propound_v he_o can_v disbelieve_v what_o it_o propound_v sufficient_o etc._n etc._n r._n b._n 1._o but_o a_o man_n that_o do_v not_o believe_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n may_v believe_v god_n veracity_n and_o yet_o be_v a_o heretic_n 2._o a_o papist_n that_o hold_v your_o church_n infallible_a may_v disbelieve_v what_o general_a council_n deliver_v as_o de_fw-fr fide_fw-la for_o so_o you_o do_v so_o that_o this_o word_n sufficient_a be_v as_o unintelligible_a among_o yourselves_o as_o mere_a nonsense_n for_o even_o general_a council_n proposal_n be_v not_o account_v sufficient_a when_o you_o be_v against_o they_o and_o yet_o every_o priest_n be_v when_o your_o turn_n require_v it_o 3._o and_o many_o a_o man_n may_v take_v the_o church_n proposal_n to_o be_v certain_a and_o yet_o think_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v but_o a_o erroneous_a faction_n and_o scarce_o a_o corrupt_a three_o
what_o be_v the_o notorious_a tradition_n of_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n i_o that_o search_v after_o it_o in_o all_o the_o book_n that_o i_o can_v get_v can_v scarce_o give_v a_o good_a account_n of_o the_o tradition_n of_o much_o of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o christian_n nay_o no_o universal_a tradition_n at_o all_o be_v notorious_a to_o most_o christian_n much_o less_o to_o all_o the_o heathen_n and_o infidel_n on_o earth_n it_o be_v not_o notorious_a to_o most_o in_o england_n what_o be_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o abassian_o syrian_n armenian_n greek_n no_o nor_o of_o the_o italian_n french_a spaniard_n german_n etc._n etc._n that_o be_v notorious_a to_o scholar_n which_o be_v not_o so_o to_o the_o unlearned_a and_o to_o antiquary_n which_o be_v not_o so_o to_o other_o scholar_n here_o w._n i._o answer_v two_o thing_n 1._o that_o to_o know_v some_o law_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n be_v of_o importance_n 10._o to_o salvation_n 2._o that_o god_n shall_v have_v make_v a_o visible_a government_n imprudent_o who_o governor_n can_v not_o be_v know_v but_o by_o revelation_n r._n b._n 1._o and_o how_o come_v import_v to_o be_v put_v instead_o of_o necessity_n to_o salvation_n this_o be_v but_o fraud_n 2._o it_o be_v worth_a our_o diligent_a enquiry_n can_v we_o prevail_v with_o these_o man_n to_o open_v to_o we_o this_o mystery_n how_o it_o be_v that_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n may_v be_v know_v to_o be_v the_o supreme_a governor_n of_o the_o world_n without_o revelation_n i_o will_v abate_v my_o antagonist_n the_o answer_v of_o all_o the_o rest_n if_o they_o will_v but_o be_v entreat_v to_o answer_v i_o this_o one_o question_n it_o seem_v that_o it_o be_v by_o no_o promise_n of_o christ_n no_o word_n of_o god_n no_o nor_o by_o any_o revelation_n of_o the_o spirit_n or_o miracle_n that_o we_o must_v know_v they_o to_o be_v our_o governor_n i_o confess_v i_o can_v know_v without_o revelation_n that_o they_o claim_v such_o authority_n as_o any_o traitor_n or_o usurper_n may_v do_v but_o that_o they_o have_v such_o authority_n it_o be_v pass_v my_o reach_n to_o conjecture_v which_o way_n it_o be_v to_o be_v prove_v without_o revelation_n ☞_o but_o i_o entreat_v the_o reader_n to_o remember_v this_o in_o all_o our_o further_a dispute_n with_o they_o that_o they_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v not_o by_o revelation_n by_o scripture_n spirit_n miracle_n or_o tradition_n make_v know_v that_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n be_v the_o supreme_a governor_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o yet_o we_o must_v know_v this_o before_o we_o can_v believe_v in_o christ_n or_o believe_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v true_a and_o we_o must_v know_v it_o of_o necessity_n to_o salvation_n and_o another_o difficulty_n here_o seem_v insuperable_a viz._n see_v this_o be_v not_o a_o matter_n of_o revelation_n it_o can_v be_v no_o matter_n of_o divine_a faith_n and_o if_o so_o how_o be_v all_o other_o faith_n resolve_v into_o it_o ☞_o and_o how_o be_v the_o belief_n of_o this_o which_o be_v no_o belief_n call_v our_o implicit_a belief_n of_o all_o the_o word_n of_o god_n can_v no_o man_n be_v save_v that_o can_v unriddle_v all_o these_o contradiction_n next_o i_o further_o note_v r._n b._n that_o if_o he_o lie_v the_o sufficiency_n on_o the_o respect_n to_o all_o man_n various_a capacity_n of_o receive_v 11._o the_o notice_n than_o they_o can_v never_o know_v who_o be_v heretic_n but_o if_o they_o lay_v it_o on_o a_o general_a publication_n than_o all_o or_o almost_o all_o man_n be_v heretic_n be_v unavoidable_o ignorant_a of_o many_o thing_n so_o publish_v to_o this_o he_o say_v that_o he_o judge_v of_o no_o man_n conscience_n ans._n but_o do_v not_o they_o judge_v of_o they_o that_o burn_v they_o and_o depose_v prince_n for_o not_o exterminate_v they_o he_o say_v it_o be_v sufficient_a 1._o that_o such_o as_o acknowledge_v themselves_o they_o know_v such_o point_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v propound_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o i_o infallible_o believe_v to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o that_o notwithstanding_o reject_v they_o as_o error_n give_v i_o ground_n to_o presume_v they_o to_o be_v heretic_n ans._n 1._o i_o perceive_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o pope_n only_o that_o be_v infallible_a but_o you_o also_o be_v infallible_a in_o believe_v his_o church_n but_o alas_o how_o many_o be_v deceive_v and_o deceiver_n that_o call_v themselves_o infallible_a 2._o but_o if_o your_o belief_n in_o the_o pope_n be_v infallible_a must_v all_o other_o be_v heretic_n and_o be_v burn_v that_o have_v not_o attain_v to_o your_o degree_n of_o knowledge_n or_o self-conceitedness_n 3._o just_o now_o you_o say_v the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n need_v no_o revelation_n to_o make_v they_o know_v and_o now_o it_o be_v a_o article_n of_o your_o belief_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o true_a church_n so_o slippery_a be_v your_o foundation_n 4._o but_o what_o mean_v that_o hard_a word_n the_o true_a church_n be_v it_o not_o enough_o if_o it_o be_v prove_v a_o true_a church_n either_o you_o mean_v the_o universal_a church_n or_o a_o particular_a church_n if_o the_o former_a why_o speak_v you_o so_o sneak_o and_o do_v not_o speak_v out_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v all_o the_o whole_a church_n that_o christ_n have_v on_o earth_n which_o assertion_n we_o abhor_v and_o despair_v of_o any_o thing_n like_o a_o proof_n of_o it_o if_o the_o latter_a what_o be_v it_o to_o we_o whether_o rome_n be_v a_o true_a church_n any_o more_o than_o whether_o ephesus_n thessalonica_n or_o such_o other_o be_v so_o 5._o but_o to_o leave_v your_o parenthesis_n what_o be_v all_o this_o to_o the_o most_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n that_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v themselves_o that_o they_o know_v such_o point_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v propound_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n there_o be_v not_o one_o of_o five_o hundred_o among_o we_o that_o ever_o read_v your_o council_n nor_o know_v one_o of_o many_o thing_n propound_v by_o you_o to_o be_v such_o and_o be_v all_o these_o now_o absolve_v from_o heresy_n how_o long_o will_v that_o be_v their_o security_n if_o the_o burn_a and_o exterminate_v religion_n shall_v prevail_v and_o be_v it_o my_o hard_a fate_n to_o become_v a_o heretic_n more_o than_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o my_o neighbour_n because_o i_o have_v read_v your_o council_n when_o they_o have_v not_o then_o i_o will_v counsel_v all_o that_o love_v not_o to_o be_v burn_v to_o take_v heed_n of_o meddle_v with_o such_o council_n i_o have_v oft_o read_v how_o dangerous_a a_o thing_n you_o judge_v it_o for_o unlicensed_a man_n to_o read_v god_n word_n and_o of_o many_o that_o have_v be_v burn_v for_o it_o and_o its_o consequent_n and_o how_o you_o account_v it_o the_o way_n to_o heresy_n but_o i_o have_v not_o oft_o before_o read_v how_o dangerous_a it_o be_v to_o read_v your_o decree_n or_o to_o know_v all_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n propound_v for_o he_o that_o know_v they_o all_o must_v have_v a_o very_a ready_a commandable_a faith_n such_o as_o can_v believe_v in_o despite_n of_o sense_n reason_n scripture_n and_o tradition_n to_o escape_v the_o guilt_n of_o heresy_n but_o i_o pray_v you_o be_v you_o not_o inexorable_a executioner_n when_o it_o come_v next_o to_o the_o burn_a of_o dissenter_n that_o you_o will_v spare_v all_o that_o confess_v not_o that_o they_o know_v what_o be_v propound_v by_o your_o church_n yea_o though_o they_o take_v not_o their_o parish-priest_n that_o tell_v it_o they_o to_o be_v infallible_a especial_o if_o they_o know_v he_o to_o be_v a_o common_a liar_n or_o one_o that_o hold_v that_o lie_a for_o man_n good_a be_v a_o venial_a sin_n or_o none_o w._n i._n 2._o such_o as_o oppose_v what_o all_o visible_a church_n have_v most_o notorious_o practise_v and_o believe_v as_o divine_a truth_n while_o they_o be_v so_o universal_o teach_v and_o practise_v i_o may_v safe_o presume_v to_o be_v heretic_n 12._o r._n b._n 1._o no_o o●…dipus_n can_v tell_v whether_o while_n here_o refer_v to_o believe_v or_o to_o oppose_v if_o to_o the_o latter_a than_o neither_o abassine_n armenian_n greek_n or_o protestant_n be_v heretic_n for_o they_o oppose_v not_o such_o point_n while_o they_o be_v so_o universal_o teach_v and_o practise_v whatever_o their_o forefather_n do_v for_o they_o have_v themselves_o so_o many_o partner_n as_o derogate_v from_o the_o pretend_a universality_n of_o the_o adversary_n but_o if_o by_o all_o the_o visible_a church_n you_o mean_v all_o except_o themselves_o or_o if_o the_o word_n while_n relate_v to_o believe_v than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v characterise_v by_o you_o for_o certain_a heretic_n for_o i_o defy_v impudence_n itself_o in_o challenge_v it_o to_o deny_v that_o the_o universal_a
deny_v the_o pope_n sovereignty_n and_o that_o as_o by_o tradition_n and_o how_o lame_a their_o tradition_n be_v which_o be_v carry_v but_o by_o their_o private_a affirmation_n and_o be_v but_o the_o unproved_a say_n of_o a_o sect._n to_o this_o he_o say_v w._n j._n that_o this_o belong_v to_o our_o controversy_n and_o not_o to_o the_o explication_n of_o our_o term_n and_o so_o i_o must_v pass_v it_o by_o r._n b._n q._n 2._o what_o proof_n or_o notice_n must_v satisfy_v as_o in_o particular_n what_o be_v true_a tradition_n 2._o w._n j._n such_o as_o with_o proportion_n be_v a_o sufficient_a proof_n or_o notice_n of_o the_o law_n and_o custom_n of_o temporal_a kingdom_n r._n b._n but_o you_o dare_v not_o tell_v we_o what_o that_o be_v that_o be_v proportionable_a this_o be_v answer_v before_o i_o add_v be_v it_o necessary_a for_o every_o christian_n to_o be_v able_a to_o weigh_v the_o credit_n of_o contradicting-party_n when_o one_o half_a of_o the_o world_n say_v one_o thing_n and_o the_o other_o another_o thing_n what_o opportunity_n have_v ordinary_a christian_n to_o compare_v they_o and_o discern_v the_o moral_a advantage_n on_o each_o side_n as_o in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o pope_n sovereignty_n when_o two_o or_o three_o part_n be_v against_o it_o and_o the_o rest_n for_o it_o do_v salvation_n lie_v on_o this_o w._n j._n as_o much_o as_o they_o have_v to_o know_v which_o book_n be_v and_o which_o be_v not_o canonical_a scripture_n among_o those_o that_o be_v in_o controversy_n r._n b._n that_o these_o book_n be_v send_v to_o the_o church_n from_o the_o apostle_n 1._o be_v a_o matter_n of_o fact_n 2._o and_o a_o assertion_n easy_o remember_v 3._o and_o all_o the_o church_n be_v agree_v of_o all_o that_o we_o take_v as_o ca●…cal_a 4._o and_o yet_o man_n that_o practical_o believe_v but_o the_o creed_n and_o summary_n of_o religion_n shall_v certain_o be_v save_v though_o they_o erroneous_o doubt_v of_o some_o of_o the_o uncontroverted_a book_n as_o chronicle_n esther_n canticle_n etc._n etc._n much_o more_o that_o receive_v not_o the_o controvert_v apocrypha_fw-la but_o 1._o your_o tradition_n in_o question_n be_v many_o particular_n hard_o for_o to_o be_v remember_v 2._o and_o that_o of_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o fact_n where_o a_o word_n forget_v or_o alter_v change_v the_o thing_n 3._o and_o most_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n be_v against_o it_o 4._o and_o you_o will_v lay_v the_o people_n salvation_n on_o it_o yea_o and_o make_v it_o one_o of_o your_o cheat_a quibble_n to_o prove_v your_o religion_n safe_a than_o we_o because_o some_o protestant_n say_v a_o papist_n may_v be_v save_v but_o you_o say_v that_o protestant_n can_v be_v save_v that_o be_v because_o you_o have_v less_o sincerity_n and_o charity_n be_v not_o here_o difference_n enough_o if_o you_o hold_v that_o all_o they_o be_v damn_v that_o believe_v not_o that_o all_o the_o apocryphal_a book_n be_v canonical_a peruse_v bishop_n cousin_n catalogue_n of_o council_n and_o father_n that_o receive_v they_o not_o and_o see_v whether_o you_o damn_v not_o almost_o all_o the_o church_n but_o if_o you_o confess_v that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o necessity_n to_o salvation_n for_o man_n to_o be_v the_o subject_n of_o your_o pope_n than_o there_o be_v that_o they_o try_v all_o the_o apocrypha_fw-la whether_o it_o be_v canonical_a and_o know_v it_o why_o then_o do_v you_o find_v your_o belief_n that_o christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n upon_o your_o forebelieve_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v his_o vicar_n or_o your_o church_n his_o church_n and_o why_o do_v you_o make_v such_o a_o stir_n in_o the_o world_n to_o affright_v poor_a people_n to_o believe_v and_o be_v subject_a to_o your_o pope_n i_o here_o ask_v he_o must_v all_o the_o people_n here_o take_v the_o word_n of_o their_o present_a teacher_n and_o he_o humane_a dare_v not_o answer_v yea_o or_o nay_o but_o as_o much_o as_o they_o do_v for_o the_o determination_n of_o canonical_a scripture_n ans._n if_o it_o be_v no_o more_o it_o give_v they_o no_o certainty_n but_o by_o the_o belief_n of_o one_o man_n as_o a_o teacher_n they_o be_v broug●…●…o_o ●…cern_v themselves_o those_o notify_a evidence_n by_o which_o the_o teacher_n himself_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d book_n be_v 〈◊〉_d and_o if_o they_o attain_v no_o high_a than_o to_o believe_v fide_fw-la d●…_n the_o 〈◊〉_d doctrine_n the_o doubt_v or_o ignorance_n of_o some_o text_n or_o book_n will_v not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o scripture_n that_o impress_n of_o divine_a authority_n which_o to_o a_o prepare_a hea●…_n o●…_n reader_n will_v 〈◊〉_d convince_v he_o that_o they_o be_v of_o god_n though_o not_o r●…e_v he_o of_o every_o particular_a text_n and_o book_n r._n b._n then_o most_o of_o the_o world_n must_v believe_v against_o you_o because_o most_o of_o the_o teacher_n be_v against_o 4._o you_o tradition_n quite_o ●…eth_v p●…er_n w._n j._n there_o be_v no_o congregation_n of_o christian_n unite_v in_o the_o same_o profession_n of_o faith_n external_a communion_n and_o dependence_n of_o pastor_n which_o be_v contrary_a in_o belief_n ●…o_o 〈◊〉_d any_o way_n to_o be_v parallel_n with_o we_o in_o extent_n and_o multitude_n prove_v there_o be_v and_o name_v it_o all_o our_o adversary_n together_o be_v a_o patch_a body_n of_o a_o thousand_o different_a profession_n and_o as_o much_o adversary_n one_o to_o another_o as_o they_o be_v to_o we_o the_o one_o justify_v we_o in_o that_o wherein_o the_o other_o condemn_v we_o so_o that_o no_o beed_n be_v to_o be_v take_v to_o their_o testimony_n non_fw-la sunt_fw-la convenientia_fw-la r_o b._n they_o agree_v not_o with_o your_o interest_n but_o if_o the_o testimony_n and_o tradition_n of_o two_o or_o three_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v not_o to_o be_v heed_v i_o doubt_v the_o testimony_n of_o your_o three_o or_o four_o part_n will_v prove_v much_o less_o regardable_a let_v we_o try_v the_o case_n for_o here_o you_o be_v utter_o confound_v 1_o indeed_o none_o that_o our_o ordinary_a language_n call_v a_o congregation_n that_o be_v man_n that_o meet_v local_o together_o be_v so_o big_a as_o all_o your_o party_n but_o a_o church_n far_o better_a unite_v than_o you_o be_v be_v far_o great_a than_o you_o those_o that_o have_v all_o the_o essential_o of_o the_o one_o church_n of_o christ_n ☞_o be_v that_o one_o church_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o reform_a church_n the_o greek_n armenian_n abassine_n syrian_n jacobite_n georgian_n copty_v etc._n etc._n have_v all_o the_o essential_o of_o the_o one_o church_n of_o christ_n therefore_o they_o be_v that_o one_o church_n of_o christ._n the_o major_n be_v undeniable_a the_o minor_a be_v thus_o prove_v they_o that_o hold_v the_o same_o head_n of_o the_o church_n believe_v in_o the_o same_o god_n the_o father_n son_n and_o ●…ly_a g●…st_n and_o be_v devote_v to_o he_o in_o the_o same_o baptismal_a covenant_n and_o believe_v all_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n desire_n and_o practise_v essential_a to_o christianity_n in_o the_o creed_n lords-prayer_n and_o decalogue_n and_o recei●…e_v all_o the_o ●…re_n as_o god_n ●…ord_n which_o i●…●…y_v here_o receive_v by_o we_o as_o canonical_a these_o have_v all_o the_o ●…ls_n of_o the_o one_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o much_o more_o but_o such_o be_v all_o the_o forementioned_a christian_n ergo_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o head_n and_o the_o body_n be_v the_o constitutive_a part_n of_o the_o church_n the_o head_n be_v christ_n the_o body_n be_v christian_n 1_o they_o be_v unite_v in_o the_o same_o profession_n of_o faith_n viz._n the_o same_o baptism_n ●…reed_v and_o scripture_n 2._o they_o be_v unite_v in_o the_o same_o external_a communion_n if_o you_o mean_v external_a worship_n of_o god_n in_o all_o the_o essential_o of_o it_o and_o much_o more_o they_o have_v the_o same_o scripture_n read_v and_o 〈◊〉_d they_o preach_v the_o same_o gospel_n they_o use_v the_o same_o sacrament_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n viz._n baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n yea_o they_o be_v common_o for_o some_o confirmation_n ordination_n 〈◊〉_d of_o penitence_n and_o absolution_n of_o p●…nitents_n matrimony_n etc._n etc._n though_o they_o agree_v not_o whether_o the_o name_n of_o sacrament_n be_v fit_a for_o they_o all_o much_o less_o sacrament_n of_o the_o cove●…_n grace_n they_o observe_v the_o same_o lord_n day_n for_o public_a worship_n they_o pray_v confess_v sin_n give_v thanks_o and_o praise_n to_o god_n and_o hold_v the_o communion_n of_o saint_n and_o communication_n to_o each_o other_o in_o want_n this_o be_v their_o external_a communion_n 3._o they_o have_v the_o same_o depen●…_n of_o the_o people_n on_o their_o pastor_n as_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n authorize_v to_o 〈◊〉_d and_o guide_v the_o church_n and_o to_o go_v before_o they_o in_o the_o public_a worship_v of_o god_n but_o if_o
you_o mean_v that_o they_o have_v not_o the_o same_o ext●…_n communion_n of_o pastor_n in_o dependence_n on_o one_o as_o the_o 〈◊〉_d pastor_n or_o governor_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n indeed_o there_o be_v none_o such_o but_o you_o for_o it_o be_v in_o that_o that_o they_o differ_v from_o you_o reader_n be_v not_o here_o a_o excellent_a disputer_n i_o affirm_v that_o the_o judgement_n of_o most_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v against_o the_o papist_n in_o the_o point_n of_o a_o universal_a head_n or_o governor_n of_o all_o 5._o church_n he_o say_v that_o no_o one_o party_n which_o be_v for_o a_o universal_a governor_n and_o yet_o be_v against_o a_o universal_a governor_n be_v so_o big_a as_o their_o party_n i_o grant_v it_o have_v they_o all_o dependence_n on_o one_o as_o a_o universal_a governor_n they_o be_v not_o against_o on_o universal_a governor_n the_o abassine_n have_v one_o abuna_n but_o he_o claim_v no_o universal_a government_n the_o armenian_n have_v their_o catholic_n bishop_n but_o he_o claim_v no_o universal_a power_n the_o greek_n have_v their_o patriarch_n at_o constantinople_n but_o he_o pretend_v not_o to_o govern_v all_o the_o world_n we_o be_v all_o against_o any_o head_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n on_o earth_n but_o christ_n and_o therefore_o be_v unite_v under_o no_o other_o you_o say_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d patch_a body_n of_o a_o thousand_o different_a profession_n etc._n etc._n ans_fw-fr reproach_n not_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n they_o be_v far_o more_o unite_v than_o your_o church_n as_o papal_n be_v not_o the_o se●…en_a point_n of_o 〈◊〉_d mention_v by_o paul_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 4_o 5_o 6_o 7_o as_o good_a as_o you_o 1._o they_o have_v one_o ●…ead_n that_o never_o ●…arieth_v and_o who_o all_o receive_v you_o have_v a_o head_n reject_v by_o most_o christian_n and_o oft_o turn_v into_o two_o or_o three_o head_n one_o say_v i_o be_o the_o head_n and_o another_o i_o be_o the_o head_n and_o set_v the_o world_n in_o blood_n and_o contention_n to_o try_v it_o out_o which_o of_o they_o shall_v get_v the_o better_a as_o your_o forty_o year_n schism_n show_v 2._o therefore_o this_o church_n which_o you_o reproach_n as_o patch_v be_v but_o one_o but_o you_o be_v real_o many_o and_o not_o one_o specifical_o as_o well_o as_o oft_o numerical_o when_o there_o be_v two_o or_o three_o pope_n you_o have_v two_o or_o three_o church_n for_o it_o be_v the_o pars_fw-la imperans_fw-la that_o individuate_v the_o society_n and_o de_fw-fr specie_fw-la you_o be_v still_o three_o church_n as_o hold_v three_o several_a head_n one_o hold_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v the_o head_n another_o a_o council_n and_o a_o three_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n agree_v and_o these_o head_n have_v oft_o condemn_v and_o depose_v one_o another_o council_n namn_v pope_n as_o heretic_n infidel_n simonist_n murderer_n adulterer_n and_o pope_n accuse_v council_n of_o schism_n and_o rebellion_n at_o least_o and_o to_o this_o day_n there_o be_v no_o certainty_n which_o be_v true_a pope_n nor_o which_o be_v true_a council_n some_o be_v call_v by_o you_o reprobate_n because_o they_o please_v not_o the_o pope_n and_o some_o approve_v but_o our_o head_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o thus_o divide_v nor_o schismatical_a 3_o our_o common_a faith_n be_v still_o the_o same_o and_o its_o rule_n the_o same_o but_o you_o be_v mutable_a by_o new_a addition_n as_o long_a council_n will_v make_v new_a decree_n and_o no_o man_n can_v tell_v when_o you_o have_v all_o and_o your_o faith_n be_v come_v to_o its_o full_a stature_n nay_o and_o your_o decree_n which_o be_v your_o rule_n of_o faith_n be_v so_o many_o and_o obscure_a that_o you_o be_v not_o agree_v yourselves_o in_o the_o number_n or_o the_o meaning_n of_o they_o 4._o it_o be_v a_o notorious_a truth_n that_o all_o these_o church_n which_o you_o say_v have_v a_o thousand_o profession_n as_o they_o all_o agree_v in_o one_o christian_a profession_n so_o do_v less_o differ_v among_o themselves_o than_o your_o seem_o unite_a church_n do_v with_o itself_o whether_o you_o respect_v the_o number_n or_o the_o weight_n of_o difference_n 1._o for_o the_o number_n sint_fw-la libri_fw-la judices_fw-la all_o the_o christian_a world_n beside_o have_v not_o so_o many_o nor_o i_o think_v half_a so_o many_o volume_n of_o controversy_n as_o your_o writer_n have_v write_v against_o one_o another_o as_o far_o as_o be_v come_v to_o the_o notice_n of_o this_o part_n of_o the_o world_n 2._o and_o for_o the_o weight_n 1._o i_o have_v show_v that_o you_o be_v divide_v in_o your_o very_a fundamental_o the_o supremacy_n you_o confess_v here_o that_o your_o church_n be_v not_o at_o all_o agree_v what_o the_o christian_a faith_n be_v or_o who_o be_v a_o christian_n some_o say_v he_o that_o believe_v the_o church_n and_o that_o god_n be_v a_o rewarder_n other_o say_v a_o christian_a must_v believe_v in_o christ_n etc._n etc._n 2._o your_o commentator_n differ_v about_o the_o sense_n of_o hundred_o or_o thousand_o of_o text_n of_o god_n own_o word_n 3_o your_o disputer_n about_o grace_n and_o freewill_n accuse_v one_o the_o other_o of_o make_v god_n the_o cause_n of_o sin_n and_o of_o deny_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n 4._o your_o moralist_n differ_v about_o many_o instance_n of_o excommunicate_a king_n and_o then_o kill_v they_o and_o of_o the_o pope_n power_n to_o depose_v they_o and_o of_o perjury_n lie_v murder_n adultery_n fornication_n false_a witness_n yea_o about_o love_a god_n himself_o whether_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o love_v he_o once_o a_o year_n or_o whether_o attrition_n that_o be_v repentance_n from_o bare_a fear_n with_o penance_n may_v not_o serve_v turn_n to_o salvation_n with_o abundance_n such_o and_o we_o confess_v that_o other_o christian_n have_v their_o difference_n and_o what_o wonder_v while_o they_o be_v so_o imperfect_a in_o knowledge_n and_o all_o grace_n and_o now_o if_o concord_n or_o discord_n must_v tell_v we_o who_o tradition_n or_o judgement_n be_v most_o regardable_a let_v the_o impartial_a judge_n whether_o the_o mo●…●…egardable_a tradition_n of_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o against_o you_o and_o whether_o your_o reproach_v they_o for_o discord_n condemn_v not_o yourselves_o much_o more_o than_o they_o if_o a_o subject_n shall_v style_v himself_o the_o king_n vicegerent_n and_o claim_n much_o of_o his_o prerogative_n without_o his_o commission_n and_o a_o three_o part_n of_o the_o kingdom_n shall_v unite_v in_o receive_v and_o obey_v he_o and_o have_v otherwise_o a_o thousand_o contention_n among_o they_o qu._n whether_o these_o or_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v the_o more_o and_o better_o unite_v when_o i_o next_o question_v whether_o the_o vulgar_a that_o know_v not_o council_n resolve_v not_o their_o 6._o faith_n into_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o parish-priest_n he_o say_v no._n and_o say_v that_o the_o priest_n be_v but_o the_o mean_n by_o who_o we_o come_v to_o believe_v and_o tell_v we_o that_o else_o we_o know_v not_o whether_o there_o be_v any_o christian_n 500_o year_n ago_o etc._n etc._n ans._n but_o if_o they_o will_v be_v content_a with_o ministerial_a teach_n and_o historical_a proof_n of_o thing_n past_a we_o will_v not_o differ_v from_o they_o we_o do_v not_o only_o assert_v these_o as_o well_o as_o they_o but_o we_o say_v that_o as_o we_o have_v sound_a teach_n so_o we_o have_v far_o better_a historical_a tradition_n of_o our_o faith_n than_o that_o which_o depend_v on_o a_o pretend_a fan●…tick_a infallibility_n or_o authority_n of_o their_o pope_n and_o sect_n even_o the_o historical_a tradition_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n and_o of_o many_o of_o the_o enemy_n themselves_o chap._n vi_o what_o mean_v you_o by_o a_o general_z council_n w._n i._n a_o general_n council_n i_o take_v to_o be_v a_o assembly_n of_o bishop_n and_o other_o chief_a prelate_n call_v 1_o convene_v confirm_v by_o those_o who_o have_v sufficient_a spiritual_a authority_n to_o call_v convene_v and_o confirm_v it_o r._n b._n here_o be_v nothing_o still_o but_o fly_v and_o hide_v his_o cause_n be_v such_o that_o he_o dare_v not_o answer_v note_v that_o 1._o here_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o what_o extent_n it_o must_v be_v at_o all_o whether_o these_o prelate_n must_v be_v send_v from_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n or_o whence_o the_o least_o provincial_a council_n that_o ever_o be_v call_v may_v be_v a_o general_n council_n by_o this_o description_n 2._o he_o tell_v we_o of_o other_o chief_a prelate_n and_o yet_o never_o tell_v what_o sort_n of_o thing_n he_o mean_v by_o chief_a prelate_n that_o be_v no_o bishop_n and_o when_o he_o have_v tell_v we_o doubtless_o he_o will_v never_o prove_v nor_o i_o hope_v affirm_v that_o any_o such_o prelate_n be_v of_o christ_n institution_n and_o if_o the_o
church_n 6._o christ_n himself_o wash_v his_o apostle_n foot_n and_o teach_v they_o to_o do_v the_o like_a which_o be_v use_v in_o those_o hot_a country_n where_o it_o be_v a_o needful_a act_n of_o ministry_n but_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o essential_a to_o the_o church_n 7._o baptism_n from_o the_o beginning_n as_o institute_v by_o christ_n be_v administer_v by_o dip_v over_o head_n in_o water_n but_o you_o take_v not_o that_o to_o be_v essential_a to_o the_o church_n 8._o the_o lord_n day_n be_v holy_a observation_n as_o institute_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n have_v ever_o be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o many_o of_o your_o doctor_n do_v equal_a it_o with_o other_o holy_a day_n and_o make_v it_o not_o essential_a to_o the_o church_n 9_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n distinguish_v essential_o from_o integral_n and_o accident_n in_o their_o time_n therefore_o they_o be_v still_o to_o be_v distinguish_v and_o it_o be_v a_o strange_a society_n that_o have_v not_o ever_o have_v integral_n and_o accident_n christ_n institute_v baptism_n say_v he_o that_o believe_v and_o be_v baptize_v shall_v be_v save_v thus_o the_o essential_o yet_o he_o say_v teach_v they_o to_o observe_v all_o thing_n whatever_o i_o have_v command_v you_o but_o all_o those_o be_v not_o essential_o for_o christ_n himself_o distinguish_v tything_n mint_n annise_v and_o cummin_n from_o the_o great_a thing_n of_o the_o law_n and_o yet_o say_v these_o aught_o you_o to_o have_v do_v and_o st._n paul_n say_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v not_o meat_n and_o drink_n but_o righteousness_n and_o peace_n and_o joy_n in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o more_o than_o these_o be_v then_o a_o duty_n all_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v do_v decent_o and_o in_o order_n and_o yet_o who_o ever_o say_v but_o you_o that_o all_o this_o be_v essential_a to_o the_o church_n christ_n by_o his_o apostle_n institute_v that_o collection_n for_o the_o poor_a shall_v be_v make_v on_o the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o week_n yet_o be_v not_o that_o essential_a to_o the_o church_n 10._o affliction_n be_v accident_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o christ_n appointment_n and_o have_v be_v ever_o there_o and_o yet_o be_v not_o essential_a to_o it_o 11._o all_o the_o number_n of_o christian_n and_o the_o high_a degree_n of_o gift_n and_o grace_n have_v be_v of_o christ_n and_o ever_o in_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o essential_a to_o it_o that_o christian_n be_v just_a as_o many_o as_o they_o have_v be_v or_o of_o such_o measure_n of_o gift_n and_o grace_n for_o even_o perfection_n be_v a_o duty_n 12._o few_o of_o your_o own_o do_v think_v that_o extreme_a unction_n be_v essential_a to_o the_o church_n and_o that_o if_o it_o cease_v it_o will_v be_v no_o church_n the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v of_o many_o other_o thing_n but_o see_v how_o these_o man_n unchurch_n themselves_o for_o if_o this_o be_v true_a than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v be_v no_o true_a church_n for_o it_o have_v cast_v off_o that_o which_o they_o call_v essential_a be_v it_o 5._o but_o the_o cup_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o public_a prayer_n in_o a_o know_a tongue_n the_o change_n have_v unchurch_v they_o these_o consequent_n fall_v on_o they_o that_o will_v unchurch_n most_o of_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n but_o page_n 55_o 56._o he_o say_v that_o he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o every_o such_o thing_n must_v be_v necessary_o believe_v 6._o by_o every_o member_n no_o not_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n but_o to_o such_o only_a to_o who_o they_o be_v sufficient_o propound_v answ._n 1._o and_o yet_o these_o man_n tell_v our_o people_n to_o affright_v they_o that_o they_o can_v be_v save_v out_o of_o their_o church_n or_o in_o our_o religion_n and_o now_o it_o be_v not_o essential_a to_o believe_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n 2._o but_o who_o can_v ever_o know_v what_o will_v pass_v for_o a_o sufficient_a propound_v while_o twenty_o degree_n of_o man_n capacity_n make_v twenty_o degree_n of_o proposal_n respective_o sufficient_a what_o man_n of_o reason_n can_v believe_v that_o such_o self-confuting_a dispute_n as_o you_o be_v a_o sufficient_a proposal_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o sure_o the_o christian_a empire_n of_o abassia_n than_o have_v no_o sufficient_a proposal_n when_o but_o late_o your_o emissary_n tell_v they_o that_o they_o never_o hear_v from_o the_o pope_n till_o now_o because_o he_o can_v not_o have_v access_n or_o send_v to_o they_o q._n whether_o that_o empire_n be_v true_a christian_n through_o so_o many_o age_n see_v they_o receive_v not_o the_o scripture_n on_o the_o authoritative_a proposal_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o papal_a church_n and_o yet_o confess_o be_v never_o bind_v to_o believe_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n 3._o by_o this_o account_n all_o christian_n essential_o differ_v from_o each_o other_o in_o their_o religion_n and_o christianity_n be_v a_o word_n of_o such_o monstrous_a ambiguity_n that_o it_o signify_v as_o many_o several_a religion_n as_o there_o be_v person_n in_o the_o world_n who_o divers_a capacity_n make_v diversity_n of_o proposal_n become_v necessary_a or_o sufficient_a to_o they_o but_o he_o say_v that_o these_o be_v all_o essential_a to_o the_o church_n though_o not_o to_o the_o several_a member_n more_o difficulty_n still_o 1._o how_o shall_v we_o ever_o know_v the_o church_n this_o way_n if_o the_o belief_n 7._o of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n be_v essential_a to_o some_o and_o only_o to_o some_o how_o many_o must_v they_o be_v that_o so_o believe_v will_v one_o serve_v or_o one_o thousand_o to_o make_v all_o the_o rest_n church-member_n that_o believe_v it_o not_o or_o how_o many_o will_v this_o leven_n extend_v to_o why_o then_o may_v not_o the_o belief_n of_o italy_n prove_v all_o the_o world_n to_o be_v the_o church_n 2._o how_o come_v another_o man_n belief_n to_o be_v of_o such_o save_a use_n to_o other_o if_o you_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o his_o belief_n but_o their_o own_o who_o believe_v not_o than_o all_o the_o world_n be_v of_o your_o church_n that_o want_v sufficient_a proposal_n and_o unbeliever_n be_v christian_n or_o of_o the_o christian_a church_n so_o be_v it_o they_o never_o hear_v of_o christ_n and_o so_o all_o the_o unknown_a world_n and_o american_n and_o most_o of_o the_o heathen_n be_v of_o your_o christian_a church_n and_o why_o may_v not_o the_o pope_n be_v save_v then_o without_o believe_v his_o own_o supremacy_n i_o very_o think_v that_o there_o be_v not_o one_o pope_n of_o twenty_o that_o believe_v his_o own_o infallibility_n doubtless_o some_o illiterate_a or_o ill-bred_a pope_n have_v have_v but_o very_o defective_a proposal_n of_o their_o own_o supremacy_n it_o be_v rather_o affirm_v by_o flattery_n than_o ever_o prove_v to_o they_o pag._n 57_o have_v first_o call_v for_o sense_n in_o my_o word_n because_o the_o printer_n have_v put_v as_o for_o be_v he_o turn_v his_o former_a assertion_n whatever_o have_v be_v ever_o in_o the_o church_n by_o christ_n institution_n 8._o be_v essential_a to_o it_o into_o another_o because_o christ_n have_v institute_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v for_o ever_o in_o the_o church_n it_o be_v essential_a and_o this_o yet_o more_o plain_o shame_v the_o asserte_a than_o the_o former_a for_o no_o man_n can_v deny_v but_o that_o christ_n have_v institute_v 1._o that_o every_o word_n of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n shall_v be_v ever_o after_o its_o existence_n in_o the_o church_n 2._o and_o that_o no_o minister_n shall_v preach_v any_o thing_n but_o truth_n in_o the_o church_n 3._o and_o that_o no_o man_n shall_v commit_v any_o sin_n at_o all_o 4._o and_o that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v deliver_v in_o both_o kind_n in_o remembrance_n of_o christ_n till_o he_o come_v etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o sure_a all_o this_o be_v not_o essential_a to_o the_o church_n pag_n 58._o he_o will_v persuade_v i_o that_o i_o miscite_fw-la fr._n sta._n clara_n and_o that_o he_o say_v not_o that_o infidel_n may_v be_v save_v but_o only_o those_o that_o have_v not_o a_o explicit_a faith_n in_o christ_n through_o invincible_a ignorance_n and_o that_o he_o say_v not_o that_o it_o be_v most_o of_o the_o doctor_n opinion_n nor_o that_o any_o may_v be_v save_v who_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o my_o friend_n will_v be_v sorry_a to_o see_v i_o so_o defective_a in_o my_o citation_n and_o he_o hope_v i_o will_v mend_v it_o in_o the_o next_o ans._n that_o i_o will_v if_o plain_a word_n transcribe_v be_v any_o amend_v but_o i_o can_v amend_v your_o deceitful_a deal_n 1._o i_o do_v not_o say_v that_o sta._n clara_n say_v they_o may_v be_v save_v out_o of_o the_o church_n but_o that_o such_o be_v in_o your_o church_n and_o so_o may_v be_v save_v who_o indeed_o be_v no_o
judgement_n which_o he_o execute_v psal._n 9_o so_o all_o thing_n and_o power_n now_o be_v give_v unto_o christ_n and_o he_o judge_v the_o world_n as_o lord_n of_o all_o for_o the_o father_n judge_v no_o man_n but_o have_v commit_v all_o judgement_n to_o the_o son_n joh._n 5._o 22._o 7._o he_o deny_v christ_n final_a visible_a judgement_n if_o he_o hold_v strict_o to_o his_o word_n that_o the_o exercise_n of_o christ_n pastorship_n be_v only_o in_o spiritual_a influence_n and_o internal_a grace_n if_o you_o say_v that_o some_o of_o my_o instance_n be_v not_o of_o his_o pastoral_n but_o his_o regal_a office_n i_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v but_o some_o that_o you_o so_o except_v 2._o it_o be_v a_o mistake_n because_o his_o pastoral_n and_o regal_a office_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o indeed_o not_o two_o office_n but_o two_o inadequate_a metaphorical_a conception_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o office_n of_o christ_n and_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o pastor_n to_o provide_v food_n for_o his_o flock_n to_o govern_v they_o to_o fetch_v they_o home_o and_o to_o defend_v they_o and_o destroy_v the_o wolf_n he_o say_v all_o that_o be_v visible_a be_v do_v by_o visible_a pastor_n and_o all_o that_o be_v invisible_a by_o christ_n in_o the_o pastoral_n function_n as_o if_o christ_n do_v nothing_o which_o they_o do_v or_o no_o more_o than_o they_o do_v and_o he_o reproach_v christ_n church_n as_o be_v a_o monster_n unless_o it_o have_v some_o other_o visible_a head_n like_o cardinal_n bertrand_n see_v his_o word_n in_o his_o book_n in_o biblioth_n patrum_fw-la that_o say_v god_n have_v not_o be_v wise_a if_o he_o have_v not_o make_v one_o universal_a monarch_n over_o all_o the_o world_n and_o when_o we_o have_v full_o prove_v that_o a_o mere_a humane_a visible_a church-governour_n over_o all_o the_o round_a earth_n be_v impossible_a and_o such_o power_n never_o be_v depute_v by_o christ_n to_o any_o and_o that_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o the_o church_n never_o ow_v or_o do_v own_o such_o will_v it_o not_o then_o follow_v that_o his_o reproach_n of_o christ_n church_n and_o government_n be_v unjust_a and_o rash_a and_o will_v it_o not_o follow_v by_o the_o same_o reason_n that_o the_o earth_n as_o god_n kingdom_n which_o christ_n also_o be_v the_o king_n of_o be_v a_o monster_n be_v a_o visible_a body_n unless_o it_o have_v one_o mere_a humane_a visible_a head_n be_v not_o man_n as_o man_n and_o governable_a by_o the_o sword_n as_o visible_a as_o man_n as_o christian_n and_o governable_a by_o the_o word_n and_o keys_n if_o so_o which_o be_v undeniable_a why_o be_v the_o christian_a world_n any_o more_o a_o monster_n without_o a_o monarch_n bishop_n than_o the_o humane_a world_n without_o a_o monarch_n king_n but_o pag._n 66_o 67._o he_o ask_v whether_o christ_n perform_v immediate_o any_o visible_a action_n in_o relation_n to_o the_o church_n and_o say_v man_n will_v expect_v that_o i_o show_v that_o christ_n not_o in_o his_o person_n but_o in_o the_o exercise_n of_o his_o pastoral_a headship_n work_v visible_o by_o himself_o answ._n if_o it_o be_v not_o the_o person_n be_v visibility_n that_o you_o require_v but_o the_o action_n that_o be_v consider_v either_o as_o it_o be_v agentis_fw-la or_o as_o in_o pass●…_n in_o the_o receiver_n the_o former_a be_v see_v if_o ever_o only_o when_o it_o be_v the_o see_v mo●…us_o of_o a_o body_n if_o the_o latter_a i_o have_v name_v you_o divers_a visible_a act_n of_o christ._n but_o why_o must_v immediate_a come_v in_o do_v not_o my_o hand_n write_v visible_o unless_o i_o do_v it_o without_o a_o pen_n how_o little_a government_n do_v great_a emperor_n exercise_n immediate_o in_o all_o their_o empire_n even_o none_o in_o the_o far_o great_a part_n in_o all_o their_o life_n but_o give_v out_o their_o law_n and_o mandate_n to_o other_o what_o government_n have_v your_o pope_n exercise_v immediate_o in_o abassia_n armenia_n tartary_n persia_n yea_o or_o mexico_n much_o less_o at_o the_o terra_fw-la australis_fw-la incognita_fw-la and_o all_o that_o side_n of_o the_o earth_n which_o lactantius_n augustine_n etc._n etc._n deny_v he_o confess_v that_o he_o cite_v not_o ephes._n 4._o to_o prove_v the_o papacy_n but_o successive_a pastor_n reader_n think_v serious_o 1._o whether_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o a_o invisible_a head_n and_o his_o church_n a_o monster_n by_o this_o man_n rule_n do_v he_o rule_v all_o his_o church_n immediate_o or_o by_o other_o if_o by_o other_o do_v not_o christ_n do_v so_o and_o better_a and_o be_v pope_n zachary_n the_o visible_a head_n at_o the_o antipode_n when_o he_o command_v boniface_n to_o excommunicate_a vigilius_n for_o hold_v such_o a_o world_n under_o we_o as_o we_o call_v the_o antipode_n and_o be_v this_o pope_n a_o capable_a head_n of_o all_o the_o world_n that_o deny_v the_o very_a be_v of_o they_o and_o hold_v that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o so_o great_a a_o part_n of_o it_o o_o what_o a_o pastor_n or_o apostle_n be_v this_o that_o excommunicate_v man_n for_o affirm_v the_o existence_n of_o the_o charge_n which_o he_o undertake_v the_o answer_n to_o w._n j_n second-chapter_n whereas_o w._n i._o will_v persuade_v man_n that_o it_o be_v first_o incumbent_n on_o we_o to_o prove_v where_o there_o have_v 1_o be_v a_o church_n in_o all_o age_n without_o the_o roman_a papacy_n i_o first_o evidence_v that_o it_o be_v incumbent_n on_o they_o as_o have_v the_o affirmative_a to_o prove_v that_o the_o universal_a church_n have_v be_v head_v by_o the_o pope_n in_o all_o age_n for_o 1._o our_o religion_n be_v nothing_o but_o christianity_n as_o such_o and_o this_o they_o confess_v have_v be_v in_o all_o age_n since_o christ_n and_o churches_n profess_v it_o so_o that_o all_o our_o religion_n be_v past_a controversy_n between_o we_o and_o they_o which_o be_v still_o to_o be_v note_v we_o have_v no_o need_n to_o prove_v that_o which_o be_v not_o deny_v who_o deny_v that_o there_o have_v be_v christian_a church_n but_o it_o be_v their_o addition_n of_o the_o papal_a sovereignty_n over_o the_o universal_a church_n which_o be_v deny_v power_n by_o we_o and_o must_v be_v prove_v by_o they_o according_a to_o the_o common_a rule_n of_o disputation_n 2._o and_o the_o denial_n of_o their_o addition_n be_v the_o renunciative_a consequence_n and_o no_o direct_a and_o proper_a part_n of_o our_o positive_a religion_n true_a faith_n be_v one_o thing_n and_o the_o renunciation_n of_o all_o error_n contrary_a to_o it_o be_v another_o thing_n the_o one_o be_v such_o as_o may_v be_v define_v the_o other_o in_o particular_n have_v no_o bound_n i_o can_v soon_o say_v that_o there_o be_v one_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_n etc._n etc._n and_o in_o general_a that_o i_o deny_v any_o other_o but_o if_o i_o will_v undertake_v to_o name_v they_o all_o that_o be_v worship_v as_o god_n and_o say_v e._n g._n satan_n jupiter_n sol_n etc._n etc._n be_v no_o god_n i_o can_v never_o know_v when_o i_o have_v do_v and_o this_o be_v but_o a_o consequent_a of_o my_o faith_n so_o it_o be_v to_o believe_v that_o mahomet_n amida_n zachea_n etc._n etc._n be_v no_o saviour_n now_o if_o any_o will_v bid_v i_o prove_v where_o there_o have_v be_v church_n in_o all_o age_n that_o do_v renounce_v arrianism_n macedonianism_n nestorian_n eutychian_o monotheli●…es_n etc._n etc._n i_o can_v prove_v that_o any_o do_v express_o renounce_v these_o before_o they_o be_v know_v in_o the_o world_n and_o yet_o christianity_n be_v the_o same_o religion_n of_o the_o church_n without_o any_o change_n before_o and_o after_o so_o w._n i_n demand_n upon_o his_o plea_n of_o present_a possession_n be_v as_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v the_o man_n of_o seventy_o year_n of_o age_n which_o be_v now_o gray-headed_a and_o lame_a be_v ever_o so_o or_o the_o church_n which_o now_o honour_v st._n martin_n st._n thomas_n aquinas_n as_o saint_n be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o if_o you_o can_v show_v we_o that_o your_o church_n have_v in_o all_o age_n so_o honour_v st._n martin_n etc._n etc._n you_o be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ._n what_o if_o it_o have_v be_v the_o church_n that_o keep_v easter-day_n as_o now_o we_o do_v and_o christmas_n day_n on_o the_o 25_o of_o december_n be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n therefore_o you_o must_v prove_v that_o your_o church_n have_v ever_o do_v so_o can_v they_o prove_v their_o papacy_n in_o the_o empire_n as_o old_a it_o will_v have_v the_o same_o answer_n viz._n it_o be_v but_o a_o part_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o the_o whole_a that_o keep_v easter_n and_o christmas_n as_o we_o do_v now_o for_o one_o part_n keep_v easter_n on_o another_o day_n till_o the_o nicene_n council_n end_v that_o controversy_n in_o the_o east_n and_o christmas-day_n
virgin_n mary_n and_o yet_o you_o take_v it_o for_o a_o controversy_n etc._n etc._n be_v these_o as_o sufficient_o propose_v as_o that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n or_o christ_n 3._o when_o petavius_n cit_v the_o word_n of_o most_o of_o the_o doctor_n or_o father_n that_o write_v before_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o of_o eusebius_n himself_o that_o be_v of_o the_o council_n and_o subscribe_v it_o as_o be_v for_o arrianisme_n or_o dangerous_o favour_v it_o do_v all_o these_o father_n think_v that_o the_o proposal_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v as_o sufficient_a as_o of_o a_o god_n or_o christ._n §_o 15._o he_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o clear_v his_o argument_n by_o two_o delude_a instance_n which_o suppose_v a_o equality_n in_o the_o revelation_n but_o he_o that_o know_v not_o 1_o that_o it_o be_v long_o before_o all_o the_o canonical_a book_n be_v equal_o know_v to_o be_v god_n word_n 2._o and_o that_o yet_o it_o be_v not_o equal_o certain_a what_o council_n be_v true_a and_o what_o tradition_n 3._o and_o that_o there_o be_v great_a difference_n between_o one_o text_n of_o scripture_n and_o another_o in_o intelligible_a place_n else_o why_o do_v their_o exposition_n so_o disagree_v yea_o of_o council_n too_o 4._o and_o that_o the_o heretic_n have_v still_o plead_v scripture_n and_o tradition_n and_o council_n as_o well_o as_o the_o orthodox_n as_o the_o eutychian_o etc._n etc._n do_v the_o council_n of_o nice_a all_o equal_o profess_v to_o believe_v scripture_n tradition_n and_o true_a council_n but_o not_o equal_o understand_v they_o i_o say_v he_o that_o know_v not_o all_o this_o know_v not_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n which_o shall_v be_v know_v in_o this_o dispute_n but_o how_o he_o will_v excuse_v the_o papist_n from_o heresy_n by_o his_o reason_v i_o know_v not_o e._n g._n christ_n institute_v his_o supper_n say_v equal_o 1._o this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o this_o be_v the_o new_a testament_n 2._o and_o equal_o say_v take_v eat_v and_o drink_v this_o the_o papist_n 1._o do_v not_o believe_v that_o literal_o this_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n though_o equal_o say_v 2._o nor_o do_v they_o believe_v that_o they_o must_v drink_v of_o it_o though_o equal_o command_v ergo_fw-la by_o w._n i_n argue_n the_o papist_n believe_v not_o that_o the_o bread_n be_v literal_o christ_n body_n or_o that_o it_o must_v be_v eat_v because_o of_o christ_n truth_n or_o authority_n that_o speak_v it_o else_o they_o will_v have_v believe_v both_o §_o 16._o he_o add_v a_o supposition_n like_o the_o rest_n that_o a_o calvinist_n be_v assure_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o the_o antichrist_n by_o the_o same_o authority_n which_o he_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v the_o sufficient_a proposer_n of_o the_o article_n of_o his_o faith_n and_o yet_o here_o may_v lie_v one_o of_o his_o usual_a equivocation_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o author_n and_o prime_a revealer_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v one_o and_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o prime_n instrumental_a revealer_n be_v another_o the_o first_o be_v god_n the_o second_o be_v the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n tell_v we_o where_o either_o of_o these_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n it_o not_o antichrist_n but_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o distant_a messenger_n and_o teacher_n be_v of_o a_o three_o rank_n a_o drunken_a or_o fornicate_a priest_n may_v be_v such_o a_o messenger_n or_o teacher_n and_o may_v give_v a_o infidel_n those_o reason_n of_o the_o faith_n which_o by_o god_n blessing_n may_v bring_v he_o to_o believe_v and_o it_o be_v possible_a such_o a_o priest_n and_o a_o synod_n of_o such_o may_v say_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o antichrist_n and_o another_o synod_n may_v say_v he_o be_v §_o 17._o i_o come_v next_o to_o answer_v a_o question_n of_o his_o own_o whether_o i_o take_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o protestant_n to_o be_v one_o church_n i_o answer_v that_o they_o have_v two_o head_n and_o we_o but_o one_o as_o they_o be_v mere_a christian_n unite_v in_o christ_n they_o be_v one_o church_n with_o we_o as_o papist_n unite_v in_o the_o pope_n they_o be_v not_o and_o if_o any_o so_o hold_v the_o papacy_n as_o not_o real_o to_o hold_v christianity_n those_o be_v not_o of_o the_o christian_a church_n with_o we_o otherwise_o they_o be_v though_o a_o corrupt_a disease_a erroneous_a part_n to_o this_o he_o say_v who_o ever_o call_v a_o king_n and_o his_o viceroy_n a_o captain_n and_o lieutenant_n two_o head_n the_o pope_n be_v a_o dependent_a officer_n answ._n 1._o but_o if_o you_o distinguish_v between_o a_o visible_a head_n and_o a_o invisible_a and_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n only_o be_v the_o visible_a head_n of_o the_o church_n as_o visible_a and_o that_o christ_n be_v only_o the_o invisible_a head_n by_o influx_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o monstrous_a body_n if_o it_o have_v not_o such_o a_o visible_a head_n as_o you_o do_v 2._o and_o if_o this_o visible_a head_n be_v a_o usurpation_n never_o own_v by_o christ_n then_o i_o have_v reason_n to_o distinguish_v the_o policy_n which_o be_v of_o god_n make_v from_o that_o which_o be_v a_o usurpation_n and_o of_o man_n relation_n according_o if_o any_o king_n shall_v say_v i_o be_o a_o vice-god_n or_o god_n viceroy_n to_o govern_v all_o the_o earth_n ●…nd_v that_o by_o god_n appointment_n and_o none_o can_v be_v save_v that_o obey_v i_o not_o i_o will_v distinguish_v between_o the_o world_n or_o particular_a person_n as_o god_n subject_n and_o as_o this_o vicegod_n subject_n §_o 18._o but_o he_o say_v be_v it_o possible_a for_o two_o person_n to_o be_v papist_n and_o one_o to_o destroy_v his_o christianity_n and_o the_o other_o not_o answ._n yes_o very_o possible_a and_o common_a that_o be_v one_o hold_v those_o error_n which_o by_o consequence_n subvert_v some_o article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n but_o as_o to_o the_o word_n not_o understand_v or_o not_o understand_v the_o consequence_n or_o only_o speculative_o and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n hold_v the_o subvert_a article_n not_o discern_v the_o contradiction_n fast_o and_o practical_o another_o do_v the_o contrary_a even_o as_o a_o monothelite_n or_o a_o nestorian_a or_o eutychian_a may_v either_o be_v one_o that_o only_o as_o to_o the_o word_n or_o superficial_o err_v and_o in_o sense_n or_o practical_o hold_v the_o truth_n or_o one_o that_o be_v contrary_a this_o shall_v seem_v no_o strange_a thing_n to_o you_o for_o even_o a_o man_n that_o profess_v only_a christianity_n may_v do_v it_o but_o nomine_fw-la tenus_fw-la not_o understand_v it_o or_o superficial_o and_o not_o practical_o and_o be_v no_o true_a christian_n indeed_o §_o 19_o when_o i_o express_v my_o hope_n that_o even_o he_o and_o i_o as_o christian_n be_v of_o one_o church_n he_o will_v not_o believe_v it_o 1._o because_o i_o be_o of_o a_o church_n by_o myself_o neither_o of_o they_o nor_o any_o other_o part_n 2._o because_o i_o have_v no_o faith_n answ._n it_o seem_v then_o that_o mere_a christianity_n be_v no_o faith_n and_o that_o there_o be_v none_o of_o the_o mere_a christian_a church_n but_o i._o but_o who_o will_v believe_v the_o latter_a and_o when_o will_v he_o prove_v either_o a_o answer_n to_o w._n j_n seven_o chapter_n §_o 1._o to_o his_o question_n why_o we_o separate_v from_o they_o i_o answer_v that_o as_o they_o be_v christian_n we_o separate_v not_o from_o they_o as_o papist_n we_o be_v never_o of_o they_o but_o our_o forefather_n think_v repentance_n of_o sin_n to_o be_v no_o sin_n if_o by_o popery_n they_o separate_v from_o christianity_n they_o be_v damnable_a separatist_n if_o they_o do_v not_o we_o be_v of_o the_o same_o church_n whether_o they_o will_v or_o not_o 〈◊〉_d to_o this_o he_o say_v that_o we_o separate_v from_o they_o as_o much_o as_o the_o pelagian_n donatist_n acacian_o luciferian_o nestorian_n and_o eutychian_o do_v from_o the_o church_n answ._n 1._o the_o doctrinal_a error_n and_o the_o separation_n be_v of_o different_a consideration_n the_o pelagian_n err_v as_o some_o dominican_n say_v the_o jesuit_n do_v the_o donatist_n like_o the_o papist_n appropriate_v the_o church_n to_o their_o own_o bishop_n and_o party_n we_o do_v none_o of_o this_o lucifer_n calaritanus_n be_v too_o zealous_a against_o the_o arrian_n not_o communicate_v with_o they_o upon_o so_o short_a repentance_n as_o other_o do_v but_o they_o go_v not_o so_o far_o as_o crab_n say_v the_o roman_a council_n in_o sylvester_n day●…_n do_v that_o receive_v no_o repentance_n before_o forty_o year_n nor_o so_o far_o as_o the_o honest_a elebertine_n council_n in_o the_o number_n of_o year_n of_o man_n exclusion_n from_o the_o communion_n i_o take_v lucifer_n for_o erroneous_a and_o schismatical_a but_o not_o comparable_a to_o the_o papist_n who_o err_v far_o more_o and_o yet_o separate_v from_o most_o of_o the_o
the_o arrian_n yea_o and_o of_o marcian_n leo_n zeno_n anastaslus_fw-la justine_n almost_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o empire_n continue_v charge_v each_o other_o with_o heresy_n and_o council_n charge_v and_o condemn_v council_n bishop_n depose_v and_o curse_v bishop_n and_o monk_n as_o their_o soldier_n fight_v it_o out_o to_o blood_n when_o the_o obey_a or_o curse_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n divide_v the_o bishop_n for_o many_o prince_n reign_v and_o when_o one_o part_n call_v the_o other_o nestorian_n and_o the_o other_o call_v they_o eutychian_o almost_o every_o where_o and_o when_o after_o that_o the_o monothelite_n cause_n be_v in_o many_o emperor_n reign_n uppermost_a one_o while_n and_o down_o another_o and_o navicula_fw-la petri_n that_o alone_o escape_v before_o be_v thus_o drown_v by_o honorius_n if_o council_n belie_v he_o not_o and_o pope_n with_o the_o rest_n when_o the_o very_a same_o bishop_n as_o at_o ephesus_n and_o chalcedon_n go_v one_o way_n in_o one_o council_n and_o another_o way_n in_o the_o next_o and_o subscribe_v to_o one_o edict_n e._n g._n of_o basiliscus_n and_o quick_o to_o the_o contrary_a of_o another_o and_o cry_v 〈◊〉_d we_o do_v it_o through_o fear_n how_o shall_v we_o then_o know_v by_o father_n bishop_n and_o council_n what_o be_v their_o concordant_a commentary_n of_o the_o scripture_n 4._o i_o ask_v you_o what_o exposition_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v it_o that_o we_o profess_v to_o differ_v from_o for_o our_o novelty_n name_v they_o if_o you_o can_v either_o by_o the_o universal_a church_n you_o mean_v proper_o all_o christian_n or_o most_o if_o all_o alas_o when_o and_o where_o shall_v we_o find_v their_o agreement_n in_o any_o more_o than_o we_o hold_v with_o they_o if_o most_o do_v we_o not_o know_v that_o the_o most_o two_o part_n to_o one_o be_v against_o the_o pope_n sovereignty_n which_o be_v essential_a to_o your_o church_n do_v not_o the_o greek_n once_o a_o year_n excommunicate_a or_o curse_v you_o to_o tell_v we_o now_o that_o above_o two_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v none_o of_o the_o church_n because_o they_o differ_v from_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o that_o the_o three_o part_n be_v that_o universal_a which_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o be_v no_o christian_n be_v word_n that_o deserve_v indignation_n and_o not_o belief_n and_o without_o the_o medium_n of_o sword_n and_o flame_n and_o torment_a inquisition_n on_o one_o side_n and_o great_a bishopric_n and_o abbey_n wealth_n ease_n and_o domination_n on_o the_o other_o have_v long_o ago_o be_v scorn_v out_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n §_o 10._o but_o he_o also_o deny_v that_o we_o believe_v with_o a_o save_v divine_a faith_n any_o of_o the_o say_a mystery_n and_o that_o our_o profession_n general_a and_o particular_a affirm_v it_o answ._n it_o be_v like_o the_o devil_n the_o accuser_n of_o the_o brethren_n will_v deny_v it_o too_o of_o our_o heart_n we_o will_v not_o enter_v a_o dispute_n of_o our_o profession_n let_v our_o book_n be_v witness_n reader_n can_v thou_o believe_v that_o we_o profess_v not_o to_o believe_v any_o christian_a verity_n with_o a_o divine_a faith_n yea_o but_o the_o man_n mean_v that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o divine_a faith_n if_o it_o be_v not_o from_o the_o beleif_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o party_n and_o how_o then_o shall_v we_o believe_v the_o pope_n own_o authority_n §_o 11._o ii_o my_o ad_fw-la argument_n to_o prove_v that_o we_o hold_v all_o the_o essential_o of_o christianity_n be_v those_o that_o profess_v as_o much_o and_o much_o more_o of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o religion_n as_o the_o catechuman_n be_v ordinary_o teach_v in_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o the_o competentes_fw-la at_o baptism_n do_v profess_v do_v profess_v the_o true_a christian_a religion_n in_o all_o its_o essential_o but_o so_o do_v the_o protestant_n etc._n etc._n to_o this_o he_o call_v for_o form_n again_o as_o if_o here_o be_v no_o universal_a and_o then_o deny_v the_o major_a but_o his_o word_n show_v that_o indeed_o it_o be_v the_o minor_a because_o the_o catechuman_n profess_v to_o believe_v implicit_o all_o that_o be_v teach_v as_o matter_n of_o faith_n by_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o that_o article_n i_o believe_v the_o holy_a church_n which_o the_o protestant_n do_v not_o answ._n a_o unproved_a fiction_n on_o both_o part_n 1._o show_v we_o in_o father_n council_n or_o any_o true_a church-record_n that_o catechuman_n be_v then_o use_v to_o make_v any_o other_o exposition_n of_o those_o word_n than_o we_o do_v do_v they_o ever_o profess_v that_o a_o pope_n or_o a_o general_n council_n can_v err_v the_o fide_fw-la do_v they_o not_o call_v many_o of_o those_o council_n general_n though_o violent_a and_o erroneous_a which_o they_o curse_v the_o great_a doubt_n than_o be_v which_o party_n be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o christian_n then_o judge_v not_o of_o faith_n by_o the_o churchman_n but_o of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o faith_n else_o they_o have_v not_o so_o oft_o reject_v and_o hereticate_v many_o pope_n patriarch_n and_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o the_o bishop_n as_o they_o do_v 2._o and_o protestant_n deny_v no_o article_n which_o ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la ubique_fw-la et_fw-la semper_fw-la as_o lerinen_n speak_v be_v account_v necessary_a to_o ●…ation_n yea_o it_o be_v one_o reason_n why_o they_o can_v be_v papist_n because_o most_o of_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v against_o the_o papacy_n and_o all_o be_v against_o it_o or_o without_o it_o for_o many_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ._n let_v the_o reader_n peruse_v cyril_n hieros_n catech._n august_n and_o all_o other_o that_o give_v we_o a_o account_n of_o the_o church_n catechism_n and_o see_v whether_o he_o can_v find_v in_o it_o i_o believe_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v make_v by_o christ_n the_o governor_n of_o all_o the_o world_n and_o be_v infallible_a in_o himself_o or_o with_o his_o council_n and_o that_o we_o must_v believe_v all_o that_o they_o say_v be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n because_o they_o say_v it_o or_o else_o we_o can_v be_v save_v but_o it_o be_v a_o easy_a way_n to_o become_v the_o lord_n of_o all_o the_o world_n if_o they_o can_v persuade_v all_o man_n to_o believe_v that_o none_o but_o their_o subject_n can_v be_v save_v 3._o and_o what_o a_o useless_a thing_n to_o they_o make_v god_n word_n that_o they_o may_v set_v up_o their_o own_o exposition_n in_o its_o stead_n we_o know_v that_o the_o word_n suppose_v that_o the_o ignorant_a must_v have_v teacher_n without_o teach_v child_n can_v so_o much_o as_o learn_v to_o speak_v and_o oportet_fw-la discentem_fw-la credere_fw-la fide_fw-la humanâ_fw-la that_o be_v he_o must_v suppose_v his_o teacher_n wise_a than_o himself_o or_o else_o how_o can_v he_o judge_v he_o fit_a to_o teach_v he_o but_o what_o be_v teach_v but_o teach_v the_o learner_n to_o know_v the_o same_o thing_n that_o the_o teacher_n do_v by_o the_o same_o evidence_n be_v it_o only_o to_o know_v what_o the_o teacher_n hold_v without_o know_v why_o if_o so_o must_v we_o know_v it_o by_o word_n or_o write_v if_o by_o word_n only_o when_o and_o where_o shall_v every_o man_n and_o woman_n come_v to_o be_v catechize_v by_o the_o universal_a church_n that_o be_v by_o all_o the_o christian_n world_n or_o be_v every_o priest_n the_o universal_a church_n or_o be_v he_o infallible_a and_o how_o come_v word_n speak_v to_o be_v more_o intelligible_a than_o word_n write_v do_v writing_n make_v they_o unintelligible_a why_o then_o be_v their_o council_n and_o commentary_n write_v but_o if_o write_v will_v serve_v why_o not_o god_n writing_n as_o well_o as_o they_o if_o god_n say_v thou_o shall_v love_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n with_o all_o thy_o heart_n be_v not_o these_o word_n intelligible_a till_o a_o pope_n expound_v they_o when_o the_o pope_n permit_v his_o casuist_n to_o expound_v they_o so_o as_o that_o love_v god_n once_o a_o month_n or_o once_o a_o year_n will_v serve_v for_o salvation_n and_o that_o attrition_n which_o be_v repeat_v only_o out_o of_o fear_n with_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n will_v also_o serve_v can_v a_o man_n be_v save_v that_o believe_v repent_v and_o love_v god_n upon_o the_o bare_a command_n of_o god_n and_o scripture_n without_o hear_v what_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n or_o council_n say_v if_o i_o make_v to_o myself_o no_o grave_v image_n so_o as_o to_o bow_v down_o and_o worship_n towards_o it_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o second_o commandment_n will_v this_o damn_v i_o because_o i_o receive_v not_o the_o papist_n obliteration_n or_o contradiction_n of_o this_o commandment_n as_o a_o exposition_n if_o all_o the_o docree_n of_o council_n be_v as_o necessary_a as_o the_o creed_n and_o scripture_n why_o be_v not_o the_o council_n read_v in_o the_o
church_n still_o three_o hundred_o year_n before_o there_o be_v any_o general_a council_n as_o well_o as_o the_o scripture_n and_o why_o do_v not_o hierome_n chrysostome_n augustine_n etc._n etc._n exhort_v me●…_n and_o woman_n to_o read_v the_o council_n as_o much_o as_o the_o scripture_n at_o least_o methinks_v you_o shall_v allow_v the_o scripture_n a_o equality_n with_o council_n but_o if_o god_n have_v speak_v that_o which_o be_v nonsense_n or_o unintelligible_a till_o council_n or_o lope_n expound_v it_o scripture_n be_v far_o from_o have_v such_o equality_n then_o paul_n and_o peter_n speak_v not_o intelligible_o but_o p._n paul_n 4_o and_o 5._o and_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n do_v then_o council_n may_v save_v they_o that_o know_v not_o scripture_n but_o scripture_n can_v save_v they_o that_o know_v not_o the_o council_n and_o do_v all_o the_o papist_n man_n and_o woman_n know_v the_o council_n in_o short_a if_o a_o tyrannical_a sect_n of_o priest_n can_v get_v this_o monopoly_n or_o peculiar_a of_o expound_v all_o god_n law_n and_o word_n so_o that_o the_o scripture_n will_v not_o save_v any_o but_o by_o their_o exposition_n it_o will_v become_v more_o the_o word_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o council_n than_o of_o god_n and_o when_o all_o be_v do_v every_o priest_n must_v be_v the_o pope_n and_o council_n to_o we_o that_o never_o see_v they_o and_o must_v be_v the_o immediate_a object_n of_o our_o infallible_a belief_n and_o if_o the_o pope_n can_v so_o communicate_v to_o so_o great_a a_o swarm_n the_o sweetness_n of_o participate_v in_o his_o universal_a dominion_n and_o infallibility_n no_o wonder_n if_o self-love_n bid_v they_o serve_v his_o usurpation_n but_o by_o that_o time_n every_o woman_n must_v be_v sure_a 1._o that_o the_o pope_n be_v christ_n vicar_n general_n indeed_o 2._o that_o with_o a_o council_n he_o be_v infallible_a 3._o and_o that_o god_n revelation_n must_v be_v receive_v only_o on_o this_o deliverer_n authority_n 4._o and_o the_o sense_n of_o all_o on_o his_o exposition_n 5._o and_o know_v how_o man_n believe_v the_o first_o three_o hundred_o year_n before_o such_o pope_n or_o council_n ever_o be_v 6._o and_o can_v tell_v certain_o which_o council_n be_v true_a and_o which_o false_a and_o which_o of_o they_o must_v be_v believe_v and_o which_o not_o 7._o and_o be_v sure_a that_o every_o priest_n do_v infallible_o report_v all_o this_o to_o she_o 8._o and_o do_v give_v a_o true_a exposition_n of_o each_o council_n before_o another_o council_n do_v expound_v they_o 9_o and_o be_v sure_a that_o she_o have_v all_o that_o those_o council_n have_v make_v necessary_a and_o have_v not_o have_v a_o sufficient_a proposal_n of_o more_o i_o say_v by_o that_o time_n all_o this_o certainty_n be_v attain_v the_o popish_a faith_n will_v appear_v to_o be_v hard_a work_n than_o they_o think_v that_o hear_v deceiver_n say_v believe_v as_o the_o church_n believe_v and_o you_o shall_v be_v save_v judge_v how_o far_o the_o pope_n exalt_v himself_o above_o god_n when_o it_o be_v thus_o confident_o tell_v we_o that_o we_o nor_o no_o man_n believe_v with_o a_o divine_a and_o save_v faith_n any_o one_o word_n of_o god_n if_o we_o believe_v it_o mere_o because_o god_n have_v give_v it_o we_o in_o the_o seal_a scripture_n and_o add_v not_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o papal_a church_n §_o 12._o my_o next_o argument_n be_v those_o that_o explicit_o profess_v the_o belief_n of_o all_o that_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o church_n creed_n for_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n and_o much_o more_o holy_a truth_n and_o implicit_o to_o believe_v all_o that_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o to_o be_v willing_a and_o diligent_a for_o the_o explicit_a knowledge_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n with_o a_o resolution_n to_o obey_v all_o the_o will_n of_o god_n which_o they_o know_v do_v profess_v the_o true_a christian_a religion_n in_o all_o its_o essential_o but_o so_o do_v the_o protestant_n etc._n etc._n here_o again_o the_o formalist_n want_v form_n a_o enumeration_n of_o particular_n in_o a_o description_n be_v not_o equal_a to_o a_o universal_a with_o he_o unless_o he_o read_v all_o and_o then_o he_o deny_v the_o major_a 1._o because_o our_o general_n profession_n be_v contradict_v in_o particular_n answ._n 1._o bare_a accusation_n without_o proof_n be_v more_o easy_a than_o honest_a 2._o there_o be_v a_o contradiction_n direct_v and_o understand_v which_o prove_v that_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o believe_v and_o a_o contradiction_n by_o consequence_n not_o understand_v which_o stand_v with_o a_o belief_n of_o the_o truth_n the_o latter_a all_o man_n in_o the_o world_n have_v that_o have_v any_o moral_a error_n 3._o o_o what_o self-condemning_a man_n be_v these_o how_o certain_o have_v a_o papist_n no_o true_a faith_n if_o abundance_n of_o contrary_a error_n nullify_v faith_n his_o second_o reason_n be_v you_o distinguish_v not_o between_o implicit_o contain_v in_o general_a principle_n and_o explicit_o contain_v in_o the_o creed_n and_o scripture_n answ._n a_o very_a logical_a answer_n to_o what_o purpose_n shall_v i_o do_v it_o his_o three_o be_v the_o strength_n creed_n and_o scripture_n be_v not_o enough_o tradition_n and_o general_a council_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n must_v be_v believe_v answ._n 1._o i_o will_v matter_n of_o practice_n be_v more_o at_o liberty_n that_o prince_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o murder_n or_o exterminate_v all_o their_o subject_n as_o heretic_n that_o will_v not_o be_v heretic_n and_o inhuman_a and_o to_o rebel_v perfidious_o against_o those_o prince_n that_o be_v sentence_v by_o his_o holiness_n for_o not_o do_v it_o 2._o alas_o who_o can_v be_v save_v on_o these_o man_n term_n if_o the_o belief_n of_o all_o the_o creed_n and_o all_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o a_o faith_n big_a enough_o to_o save_v he_o and_o yet_o perhaps_o you_o may_v hear_v again_o that_o man_n may_v be_v save_v without_o any_o of_o all_o this_o save_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o reward_v god_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o subject_n be_v the_o infallible_a church_n universal_a and_o it_o be_v but_o prove_v a_o insufficient_a proposal_n and_o we_o be_v deliver_v from_o tradition_n council_n scripture_n creed_n and_o all_o and_o never_o be_v the_o proposal_n of_o council_n more_o insufficient_a than_o when_o council_n be_v most_o frequent_a when_o in_o the_o reign_n of_o constantius_n valens_n valentinian_n theodosius_n arcadius_n and_o honorius_n good_a theodosius_n junior_a marcian_n leo_n zeno_n anastasius_n justin_n justinian_n and_o long_o after_o anathematise_v one_o general_n council_n and_o cry_v up_o another_o and_o set_v council_n against_o council_n be_v too_o much_o of_o the_o religion_n of_o those_o time_n 4._o again_o he_o deny_v that_o protestant_n not_o excuse_v by_o invincible_a ignorance_n believe_v any_o article_n with_o a_o save_v faith_n answ._n easie_n dispute_v can_v a_o quaker_n say_v so_o too_o by_o we_o and_o you_o but_o how_o unhappy_a a_o thing_n be_v knowledge_n then_o and_o how_o bless_v a_o thing_n be_v invincible_a ignorance_n which_o may_v prevent_v so_o many_o man_n damnation_n §_o 13._o i_o prove_v the_o major_a by_o the_o express_a testimony_n of_o many_o papist_n ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la to_o which_o he_o say_v it_o be_v to_o no_o purpose_n for_o our_o question_n be_v not_o of_o what_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v express_o only_a but_o of_o what_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v both_o express_o and_o implicit_o of_o all_o christian_n respective_o answ._n reader_n judge_n with_o what_o ingenuity_n these_o man_n dispute_v and_o how_o they_o make_v nothing_o of_o give_v up_o all_o their_o cause_n and_o yet_o cant_v on_o with_o any_o of_o the_o most_o senseless_a word_n he_o have_v large_o enough_o tell_v we_o before_o that_o the_o belief_n of_o general_n truth_n explicit_o be_v the_o implicit_a belief_n of_o the_o contain_v particular_n though_o unknown_a to_o the_o believer_n i_o be_o now_o prove_v that_o protestant_n explicit_a faith_n leave_v out_o no_o article_n necessary_a to_o be_v explicit_o believe_v to_o this_o end_n i_o cite_v bellarmine_n and_o costerus_n and_o after_o many_o other_o confess_v what_o i_o say_v in_o plain_a word_n even_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o our_o enumeration_n he_o deny_v none_o of_o my_o proof_n as_o to_o explicit_a belief_n and_o do_v we_o need_v any_o more_o be_v not_o all_o that_o which_o he_o call_v explicit_a belief_n the_o mere_a denomination_n of_o the_o explicite_fw-la from_o the_o particular_n employ_v in_o it_o can_v any_o man_n want_v a_o implicit_a belief_n that_o want_v no_o explicite_fw-la belief_n if_o i_o be_o not_o bind_v explicit_o to_o believe_v that_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n be_v the_o universal_a church_n or_o the_o infallible_a deliverer_n of_o tradition_n or_o expounder_n of_o scripture_n or_o my_o rightful_a governor_n how_o be_o i_o
sincerity_n but_o the_o very_o be_v of_o they_o be_v the_o papist_n confutation_n of_o we_o §_o 18._o second_o i_o prove_v it_o from_o our_o knowledge_n and_o sense_n of_o our_o own_o acts._n when_o i_o know_v and_o feelmy_a love_n shall_v i_o believe_v a_o pope_n that_o never_o see_v i_o that_o tell_v i_o i_o do_v not_o know_v or_o feel_v it_o to_o this_o his_o easy_a answer_n serve_v he_o say_v i_o do_v not_o feel_v that_o i_o true_o love_v god_n or_o his_o servant_n if_o i_o be_v a_o formal_n protestant_n my_o heart_n deceive_v i_o answ._n no_o wonder_v if_o all_o these_o priest_n be_v infallible_a that_o know_v all_o our_o heart_n so_o much_o better_a than_o we_o but_o who_o shall_v be_v judge_n the_o true_a searcher_n of_o heart_n if_o the_o fruit_n must_v be_v the_o evidence_n i_o shall_v rather_o fear_v that_o such_o murderer_n of_o hundred_o thousand_o as_o kill_v the_o waldenses_n albigenses_n french_a english_a dutch_a etc._n etc._n be_v like_a to_o be_v without_o love_n than_o all_o those_o meek_a and_o godly_a protestant_n that_o i_o have_v know_v for_o no_o murderer_n have_v eternal_a life_n but_o forma_fw-la be_v sometime_o take_v for_o figura_fw-la and_o for_o outward_a appearance_n only_o and_o such_o formal_a protestant_n as_o have_v but_o the_o clothing_n of_o christianity_n have_v not_o indeed_o the_o love_n of_o god_n §_o 19_o he_o add_v what_o will_v you_o say_v to_o a_o arrian_n a_o turk_n or_o jew_n that_o will_v urge_v the_o like_a knowledge_n or_o feel_n answ._n the_o same_o that_o i_o will_v do_v to_o a_o bloody_a papist_n and'i_n will_v tell_v he_o that_o if_o a_o bediam_fw-la think_v that_o he_o be_v a_o prince_n or_o a_o fool_n that_o he_o be_v wise_a or_o a_o beggar_n that_o he_o be_v a_o lord_n or_o a_o illiterate_a man_n that_o he_o be_v learned_a it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o no_o man_n can_v know_v that_o he_o be_v a_o prince_n or_o a_o lord_n or_o wise_a or_o learned_a i_o will_v tell_v he_o that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o effect_n without_o the_o adequate_a cause_n nor_o be_v there_o a_o cause_n where_o there_o be_v no_o effect_n and_o lie_v that_o perceive_v not_o god_n amiableness_n in_o the_o necessary_a demonstration_n of_o it_o can_v love_v that_o goodness_n he_o perceive_v not_o nor_o can_v any_o desire_n or_o seek_v the_o heaven_n which_o he_o believe_v not_o and_o i_o will_v tell_v he_o that_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o in_o a_o redeemer_n or_o a_o sanctifier_n can_v love_v he_o nor_o can_v he_o love_v believer_n and_o godly_a man_n as_o such_o who_o know_v not_o that_o they_o as_o such_o be_v lovely_a and_o that_o if_o real_o he_o love_v god_n and_o holiness_n and_o the_o hope_n of_o heaven_n before_o this_o world_n it_o will_v work_v in_o his_o seek_v they_o above_o the_o world_n if_o you_o have_v argue_v rational_o against_o our_o love_n of_o god_n and_o holiness_n from_o any_o prove_a defect_n in_o the_o necessary_a cause_n which_o be_v in_o you_o we_o have_v be_v oblige_v thankful_o to_o hear_v and_o try_v your_o word_n but_o let_v reason_n judge_v e._n g._n whether_o that_o man_n be_v like_a to_o love_v this_o world_n best_o and_o be_v loath_a to_o leave_v it_o who_o look_v to_o go_v at_o death_n into_o the_o flame_n of_o purgatory_n or_o he_o that_o look_v to_o go_v to_o the_o glorious_a presence_n of_o his_o redeemer_n and_o whether_o he_o be_v like_a to_o love_n god_n best_a that_o look_v eth_z to_o be_v torment_v by_o he_o in_o those_o flame_n or_o he_o that_o look_v to_o pass_v into_o heavenly_a perfect_a love_n christ_n tell_v we_o that_o forgive_a much_o cause_v love_n if_o a_o man_n be_v to_o torment_v you_o so_o long_o will_v it_o make_v you_o love_v he_o or_o at_o least_o be_v it_o a_o good_a proof_n that_o protestant_n love_v not_o god_n because_o they_o believe_v not_o that_o he_o will_v torment_v they_o in_o flame_n but_o present_o comfort_v they_o §_o 20._o ii_o my_o ad_fw-la argument_n to_o prove_v the_o perpetual_a visibility_n of_o our_o church_n be_v this_o the_o church_n who_o faith_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o its_o rule_n in_o all_o point_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n have_v be_v visible_a ever_o since_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n on_o earth_n but_o the_o church_n who_o faith_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o its_o rule_n in_o all_o point_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v it_o of_o which_o the_o protestant_n be_v member_n therefore_o the_o church_n of_o which_o the_o protestant_n be_v member_n have_v be_v visible_a etc._n etc._n here_o he_o want_v form_n again_o because_o the_o predicate_v of_o the_o minor_a be_v the_o subject_a of_o the_o conclussion_n and_o then_o he_o distinguish_v of_o the_o mayor_n of_o contain_v involute_o in_o general_a principle_n he_o grant_v it_o but_o if_o express_o he_o deny_v it_o answ._n 1._o the_o marvellous_a logician_n it_o seem_v be_v but_o for_o one_o mood_n or_o figure_n but_o by_o what_o authority_n or_o reason_n 2._o he_o deny_v that_o the_o church_n faith_n in_o all_o point_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v express_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n i_o prove_v the_o contrary_a ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la before_o out_o of_o bellarmine_n and_o costerus_n plain_a word_n and_o shall_v by_o and_o by_o further_a prove_v it_o mark_v again_o the_o papist_n value_v of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n he_o that_o explicit_o believe_v all_o that_o it_o express_o deliver_v and_o no_o more_o say_v these_o man_n can_v be_v save_v and_o yet_o if_o they_o believe_v none_o of_o it_o but_o a_o reward_v deity_n say_v most_o or_o some_o more_o of_o the_o creed_n say_v other_o man_n may_v be_v save_v if_o they_o do_v but_o believe_v that_o all_o be_v god_n word_n and_o truth_n which_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o priest_n or_o council_n say_v be_v such_o next_o he_o distinguish_v of_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o be_v by_o all_o distinct_o know_v and_o express_o believe_v and_o so_o he_o grant_v the_o scripture-sufficiency_n very_o good_a now_o all_o that_o be_v so_o necessary_a to_o a_o distinct_a knowledge_n and_o express_a belief_n be_v there_o but_o of_o all_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v implicit_o and_o distinct_o know_v he_o deny_v it_o these_o distinction_n suppose_v say_v he_o i_o deny_v your_o consequence_n answ._n here_o be_v all_o new_a still_o 1._o he_o call_v my_o conclusion_n my_o consequence_n and_o recite_v it_o 2._o what_o he_o mean_v by_o thing_n to_o be_v distinct_o know_v by_o all_o and_o yet_o believe_v but_o implicit_o be_v pass_v my_o understanding_n have_v to_o do_v with_o that_o man_n that_o have_v all_o this_o while_n describe_v implicit_a belief_n by_o the_o express_a belief_n of_o some_o mere_a general_n truth_n and_o must_v man_n know_v all_o that_o distinct_o which_o they_o believe_v not_o distinct_o but_o in_o their_o general_n the_o man_n sure_o be_v confound_v or_o confound_v i_o the_o general_n to_o be_v believe_v be_v the_o pope_n and_o council_n authority_n in_o propound_v and_o expound_v god_n word_n this_o be_v their_o save_a faith_n the_o belief_n of_o all_o that_o they_o propose_v be_v implicit_o contain_v in_o this_o but_o must_v all_o this_o be_v distinct_o know_v by_o all_o and_o yet_o not_o distinct_o believe_v the_o first_o will_v damn_v all_o that_o know_v not_o every_o one_o of_o their_o council_n decree_n de_fw-la fide_fw-la the_o ad_fw-la will_v show_v that_o they_o believe_v nothing_o at_o all_o for_o he_o that_o know_v distinct_o what_o the_o pope_n say_v and_o yet_o believe_v it_o not_o distinct_o can_v believe_v the_o general_a of_o his_o veracity_n but_o perhaps_o he_o speak_v distributive_o of_o two_o sort_n of_o faith_n viz._n both_o the_o implicit_a and_o the_o explicite_fw-la legeris_fw-la and_o so_o mean_v to_o deny_v the_o scripture-sufficiency_n only_o to_o the_o first_o if_o so_o i_o show_v the_o flat_a contradiction_n of_o it_o before_o where_o there_o be_v all_o that_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v express_o eo_fw-la nomine_fw-la there_o be_v all_o that_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v implicit_o because_o to_o be_v believe_v implicit_o with_o this_o man_n be_v but_o to_o be_v the_o unknown_a consequent_a or_o enclose_v of_o that_o which_o be_v believe_v express_o §_o 21._o for_o the_o proof_n of_o my_o major_n the_o scripture-sufficiency_n as_o to_o all_o thing_n common_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n after_o bellarmine_n and_o costerus_n i_o have_v cite_v the_o plain_a word_n at_o large_a of_o 1._o ragus_n in_o council_n basil._n bin._n p._n 299._o 2._o gerson_n de_fw-fr exam_fw-la doct_v p._n 2._o cont_n 2._o 3._o durandus_fw-la in_o praefat._n &_o hierom._n in_o he_o 4._o aquinas_n 22._o 9_o 1._o à_fw-fr 10._o ad_fw-la 1._o &_o de_fw-fr verit._n disp_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la q._n
10._o ad_fw-la 11._o 5._o scatus_fw-la in_o prolegom_n in_o sect_n 1._o 6._o greg._n armin._n in_o prol._n e._n g._n q._n 1._o art_n 2._o resp._n fol._n 3_o &_o 4._o 7._o guil._n parisian_n de_fw-fr legib._n c._n 16._o p._n 46._o 8._o bellarmine_n again_o de_fw-la verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la li._n 10._o c._n 10._o ad_fw-la arg_n 5._o etc._n etc._n and_o then_o i_o most_o full_o prove_v it_o out_o of_o the_o ancient_a church-doctor_n but_o to_o all_o these_o he_o give_v such_o frivolous_a answer_n that_o it_o irk_v i_o to_o weary_a the_o reader_n by_o repeat_v and_o answer_v they_o and_o he_o that_o will_v faithful_o peruse_v the_o author_n word_n i_o think_v will_n either_o need_v no_o other_o confutation_n of_o he_o or_o be_v uncapable_a of_o understand_v one_o when_o he_o see_v it_o the_o fore-confuted_n contradiction_n of_o sufficient_a explicit_a and_o yet_o not_o sufficient_a implicit_a be_v the_o chief_a and_o next_o a_o vain_a supposition_n that_o to_o say_v that_o scripture_n be_v sufficient_a to_o all_o theological_a point_n and_o conclusion_n be_v less_o than_o to_o say_v it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o necessary_a article_n of_o faith_n and_o if_o any_o of_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n exposition_n he_o deny_v the_o scripture-sufficiency_n as_o a_o rule_n and_o yet_o their_o council_n need_v exposition_n too_o §_o 22._o iii_o my_o 3d._a argument_n for_o our_o church_n perpetual_a visibility_n be_v if_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o christian_n though_o not_o as_o papal_n have_v be_v visible_a ever_o since_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n than_o the_o church_n of_o which_o the_o protestant_n be_v member_n have_v be_v visible_a ever_o since_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o the_o antecedent_n be_v their_o own_o therefore_o they_o may_v not_o deny_v the_o consequent_a here_o he_o want_v form_n again_o because_o as_o christian_n be_v in_o the_o antecedent_n and_o not_o in_o the_o sequel_n answ._n he_o may_v have_v see_v that_o it_o be_v but_o a_o expository_n term_v in_o a_o parenthesis_n and_o so_o the_o same_o exposition_n in_o the_o consequent_a be_v suppose_v next_o he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o fallacy_n a_o secundum_fw-la quid_fw-la ad_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la answ._n so_o then_o the_o church_n as_o christian_n be_v not_o the_o christian_a church_n but_o secundum_fw-la quid_fw-la but_o we_o that_o know_v no_o other_o profess_v to_o be_v of_o no_o other_o nor_o to_o prove_v the_o visibility_n of_o any_o other_o than_o the_o church_n as_o christian._n let_v they_o prove_v more_o that_o pretend_v to_o any_o other_o next_o he_o say_v that_o the_o protestant_n have_v be_v visible_a as_o christian_n be_v all_o that_o can_v be_v pretend_v and_o yet_o that_o also_o he_o deny_v for_o they_o believe_v not_o one_o article_n with_o a_o infallible_a supernatural_a divine_a faith_n answ._n 1._o the_o question_n be_v whether_o they_o profess_v not_o so_o to_o do_v nay_o rather_o whether_o their_o objective_a faith_n that_o be_v all_o the_o creed_n and_o holy_a scripture_n be_v not_o infallible_a of_o supernatural_a revelation_n and_o divine_a he_o that_o deny_v this_o seem_v a_o infidel_n but_o if_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n must_v have_v a_o actual_a subjective_n faith_n that_o be_v of_o supernatural_a divine_a infusion_n then_o 1._o no_o hypocrite_n be_v a_o church-member_n 2._o and_o no_o man_n can_v know_v who_o be_v a_o church-member_n beside_o himself_o 3._o and_o so_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v invisible_a this_o be_v clear_a 2._o i_o must_v not_o too_o oft_o write_v the_o same_o thing_n if_o the_o reader_n will_v peruse_v a_o small_a tract_n of_o my_o call_v the_o certainty_n of_o christianity_n without_o popery_n he_o shall_v soon_o see_v whether_o the_o papist_n faith_n or_o we_o be_v the_o more_o certain_a and_o divine_a of_o which_o also_o i_o have_v say_v more_o in_o my_o treatise_n call_v the_o safe_a religion_n and_o mr._n pool_n in_o his_o nullity_n of_o the_o roman_a faith_n §_o 23._o i_o here_o show_v that_o have_v prove_v our_o visibility_n as_o christian_a i_o need_v not_o prove_v a_o visibility_n as_o papal_n any_o more_o than_o he_o that_o will_v prove_v his_o humane_a genealogy_n have_v some_o leprous_a ancestor_n need_v to_o prove_v that_o all_o be_v leprous_a here_o he_o deny_v popery_n to_o be_v leprosy_n and_o again_o false_o tell_v we_o that_o if_o it_o be_v so_o all_o the_o visible_a church_n in_o the_o world_n be_v leprous_a which_o need_v no_o more_o confutation_n than_o be_v oft_o give_v it_o §_o 24._o he_o tell_v i_o how_o a_o 1500_o the_o pope_n be_v in_o possession_n and_o we_o dispossess_v he_o without_o order_n etc._n etc._n answ._n a_o old_a cant_n but_o 1._o i_o have_v full_o prove_v that_o he_o never_o be_v in_o possession_n of_o the_o government_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n 2._o nor_o in_o the_o empire_n or_o any_o other_o prince_n dominion_n but_o by_o humane_a donation_n and_o consent_n as_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n be_v in_o england_n 3._o and_o that_o they_o that_o give_v he_o that_o power_n may_v on_o just_a reason_n take_v it_o away_o and_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o another_o prince_n country_n can_v stand_v here_o by_o his_o authority_n when_o he_o have_v lose_v the_o government_n of_o england_n himself_o §_o 25._o iv._o my_o four_o argument_n add_v more_o than_o my_o thesis_n require_v viz._n if_o there_o have_v be_v since_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n a_o christian_a church_n that_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o the_o roman_a pope_n as_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n and_o universal_a head_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n than_o the_o church_n of_o which_o the_o protestant_n be_v member_n have_v be_v visible_a both_o in_o its_o be_v and_o in_o its_o freedom_n from_o popery_n but_o the_o antecedent_n be_v true_a ergo_fw-la so_o be_v the_o consequent_a to_o this_o 1._o he_o want_v the_o word_n ever_o in_o the_o antecedent_n and_o yet_o before_o abate_v it_o but_o he_o know_v that_o since_o be_v put_v for_o ever_o since_o 2._o he_o say_v i_o suppose_v that_o the_o sole_a denial_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n constitute_v the_o church_n whereof_o the_o protestant_n be_v member_n answ._n in_o despite_n of_o my_o frequent_a profession_n to_o the_o contrary_a who_o still_o tell_v he_o that_o our_o christianity_n and_o relation_n to_o christ_n and_o one_o another_o make_v we_o church-member_n and_o our_o freedom_n from_o the_o papacy_n be_v our_o renunciation_n of_o a_o usurper_n §_o 26._o i_o prove_v my_o antecedent_n 1._o from_o the_o express_a word_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n can_v 28_o which_o he_o answer_v as_o before_o where_o he_o be_v consute_v §_o 27._o 2._o my_o 2d_o proof_n be_v from_o the_o silence_n of_o the_o ancient_a writer_n tertullian_n cyprian_n athan._n nazianzen_n nissene_n basil_n optatus_n augustine_n etc._n etc._n that_o use_v not_o this_o argument_n of_o pope_n power_n over_o all_o the_o world_n as_o of_o divine_a right_n to_o confute_v the_o heretic_n that_o they_o have_v to_o do_v with_o when_o two_o word_n have_v expeditious_o do_v all_o if_o this_o have_v then_o be_v believe_v here_o he_o say_v their_o author_n have_v prove_v that_o the_o father_n do_v so_o answ._n soon_o say_v and_o as_o soon_o deny_v the_o book_n be_v in_o our_o hand_n as_o well_o as_o you_o i_o will_v now_o instance_n but_o in_o cyprian_n and_o the_o african_a church_n in_o his_o day_n and_o in_o augustine_n and_o the_o same_o church_n in_o his_o day_n 1._o do_v cyprian_n and_o his_o council_n believe_v stephen_n universal_a monarchy_n when_o he_o oppose_v his_o judgement_n with_o so_o much_o vehemency_n and_o set_v the_o scripture_n against_o his_o plea_n from_o tradition_n let_v he_o that_o will_v read_v his_o epistle_n of_o this_o too_o long_o to_o be_v recite_v believe_v it_o if_o he_o can_v and_o when_o he_o twit_v his_o arrogance_n in_o council_n with_o nemo_fw-la nostrum_fw-la se_fw-la dicit_fw-la episcopum_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la 2._o the_o plea_n of_o aurelius_n augustine_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o african_a bishop_n i_o have_v former_o recite_v of_o which_o harding_n say_v that_o the_o african_n seduce_v by_o aurelius_n continue_v twenty_o year_n in_o schism_n from_o rome_n and_o do_v augustine_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n then_o believe_v the_o pope_n sovereignty_n even_o in_o the_o empire_n i_o do_v plain_o show_v that_o if_o the_o donatis●…s_n novatian_o and_o all_o such_o sect_n have_v believe_v the_o roman_a sovereignty_n and_o infallibility_n they_o have_v not_o so_o differ_v from_o they_o if_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v it_o the_o father_n will_v have_v take_v the_o near_a way_n and_o write_v their_o volume_n to_o convince_v they_o that_o this_o papal_a rule_n be_v it_o that_o must_v end_v all_o their_o controversy_n instead_o of_o write_v voluminous_o from_o scripture_n and_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o
yet_o it_o be_v the_o catholic_n that_o be_v the_o whole_a itself_o 9_o that_o tradition_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v with_o equal_a pious_a affection_n and_o reverence_n as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 10._o that_o the_o virgin_n mary_n be_v conceive_v without_o original_a sin_n decree_v at_o basil._n 11._o that_o the_o people_n may_v not_o read_v the_o scripture_n translate_v into_o a_o know_a tongue_n without_o a_o special_a licence_n 12._o that_o the_o book_n of_o maccabee_n and_o other_o such_o be_v part_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o faith_n against_o which_o see_v bishop_n cousin_n and_o dr._n io._n reignolds_n see_v in_o dr._n challenor_n credo_fw-la eccles._n cath._n sixteen_o of_o their_o novelty_n see_v dallaus_n de_fw-fr cultu_fw-la latinorum_n their_o worship_n prove_v new_a all_o this_o w._n i._o pass_v over_o §_o 42._o my_o ten_o argument_n be_v if_o multitude_n yea_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o christian_n in_o all_o age_n have_v be_v ignorant_a of_o popery_n but_o not_o of_o christianity_n then_o there_o have_v be_v a_o succession_n of_o visible_a professor_n of_o christianity_n that_o be_v no_o papist_n but_o the_o antecedent_n be_v true_a ergo_fw-la etc._n etc._n here_o i_o bring_v full_a proof_n of_o the_o antecedent_n 1._o from_o the_o ignorance_n which_o they_o themselves_o accuse_v the_o aethiopian_n armenian_n greek_n russian_n etc._n etc._n of_o and_o the_o protestant_n also_o 2._o the_o know_a ignorance_n of_o the_o far_o most_o of_o the_o vulgar_a in_o their_o own_o church_n 3._o the_o papist_n charge_v on_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o other_o about_o their_o power_n 4._o the_o difference_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n and_o basil_n and_o late_a and_o florence_n about_o their_o essential_o 5._o the_o large_a proof_n bring_v by_o dr._n field_n append._n l._n 3._o potter_n p._n 68_o bishop_n morton_z apol._n to_o this_o he_o answer_v as_o to_o the_o last_o by_o notorious_a give_v up_o his_o cause_n neither_o grant_v nor_o deny_v that_o there_o have_v be_v a_o succession_n of_o visible_a professor_n of_o christianity_n that_o be_v no_o papist_n which_o he_o say_v be_v all_o that_o i_o prove_v answ._n and_o what_o need_v i_o more_o be_v not_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o church_n as_o christian_a grant_v by_o he_o therefore_o if_o i_o prove_v it_o also_o successive_o christian_n without_o popery_n i_o know_v not_o what_o else_o the_o man_n will_v have_v but_o he_o say_v arrian_n may_v say_v so_o too_o answ._n arrian_n be_v not_o christian_n if_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o beside_o our_o reject_v popery_n we_o have_v some_o other_o heresy_n which_o unchristen_v we_o 1._o that_o be_v nothing_o against_o my_o argument_n which_o be_v but_o christian_n visibility_n ..._o 2._o why_o do_v he_o never_o tell_v we_o what_o that_o heresy_n be_v will_v he_o not_o if_o he_o can_v and_o be_v he_o not_o concern_v to_o do_v it_o 3._o it_o be_v know_v that_o it_o be_v our_o reject_v popery_n that_o be_v the_o heresy_n they_o charge_v we_o with_o as_o to_o any_o other_o we_o defy_v their_o accusation_n and_o 4._o if_o any_o individual_a person_n be_v accuse_v let_v it_o be_v prove_v our_o religion_n objective_n be_v justify_v by_o themselves_o from_o heresy_n and_o all_o positive_a error_n for_o it_o be_v nothing_o but_o the_o sacramental_a covenant_n brief_o explain_v in_o the_o creed_n lord_n prayer_n and_o decalogue_n in_o the_o essential_o and_o in_o that_o and_o the_o integral_n all_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n so_o that_o our_o proof_n of_o our_o church_n visibility_n as_o christian_a and_o not_o papal_a be_v all_o that_o reason_n can_v require_v of_o we_o and_o so_o this_o task_n be_v do_v §_o 43._o after_o these_o argument_n i_o add_v some_o testimony_n of_o historian_n which_o show_v how_o melch-canus_n word_n de_fw-la facto_fw-la be_v to_o be_v understand_v and_o how_o the_o word_n catholic_n church_n be_v then_o take_v and_o how_o small_a a_o party_n the_o papal_a sovereignty_n have_v in_o the_o very_o worst_a time_n viz._n rog._n hoveden_n &_o mat._n paris_n in_o h._n 2d_o show_v that_o it_o be_v avitas_fw-la leges_fw-la consuetudinis_fw-la angliae_fw-la which_o the_o pope_n here_o damn_v and_o anathematise_v all_o that_o favour_a and_o observe_v they_o here_o be_v tradition_n antiquity_n and_o the_o immutability_n of_o rome_n the_o german_a history_n collect_v by_o reuberus_n pistorius_n freberus_n and_o goldastus_n full_o show_v that_o the_o papal_a tyranny_n only_o keep_v under_o by_o a_o turbulent_a faction_n the_o great_a part_n by_o fraud_n and_o force_n which_o never_o consent_v to_o they_o the_o apology_n of_o hen._n 4._o the_o emperor_n in_o m._n freberus_n to._n 1._o p._n 178._o say_v behold_v pope_n hildebrand_n bishop_n when_o doubtless_o they_o be_v murderer_n of_o soul_n and_o body_n such_o as_o deserve_o be_v call_v the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n yet_o they_o write_v that_o on_o his_o and_o on_o their_o party_n be_v the_o holy_a mother-church_n when_o the_o catholic_n that_o be_v the_o universal_a church_n be_v not_o in_o the_o schism_n of_o any_o once_o side_n or_o party_n but_o in_o the_o universality_n of_o the_o faithful_a agree_v together_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o peace_n and_o charity_n and_o p._n 179._o see_v how_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o devil_n be_v beside_o himself_o and_o will_v draw_v we_o with_o he_o he_o into_o the_o ditch_n of_o perdition_n who_o write_v that_o god_n holy_a priesthood_n be_v with_o only_o thirteen_o n._n b._n or_o few_o more_o bishop_n of_o hildebrand_n and_o that_o the_o priesthood_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n through_o the_o world_n be_v separate_v from_o the_o church_n of_o god_n our_o mr._n w._n i._o will_v say_v that_o only_o these_o thirteen_o bishop_n be_v univocal_a christian_n when_o certain_o not_o only_o the_o testimony_n of_o gregory_n and_o innocent_n but_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o the_o holy_a father_n agree_v with_o that_o of_o cyprian_a that_o he_o be_v a_o alien_n profane_a a_o enemy_n that_o he_o can_v have_v god_n for_o his_o father_n that_o hold_v not_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o p._n 181._o but_o some_o that_o go_v out_o from_o we_o say_v and_o write_v that_o they_o defend_v the_o party_n of_o t●…r_n gregory_n not_o the_o whole_a which_o be_v christ_n which_o be_v the_o catholic_n church_n of_o christ_n so_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o the_o pope_n sect_n be_v distinct_a and_o p._n 180._o but_o our_o adversary_n that_o go_v from_o we_o n._n b._n not_o we_o from_o they_o use_v thus_o to_o commend_v themselves_o we_o be_v the_o catholic_n we_o be_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n so_o the_o writer_n call_v they_o catholic_n and_o we_o that_o hold_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n that_o consent_n with_o all_o good_a man_n that_o love_n peace_n and_o brotherhood_n ʋs_o he_o call_v schismatic_n and_o heretic_n and_o excommunicate_a because_o we_o resist_v not_o the_o king_n he_o add_v out_o of_o isidore_n etymol_n l._n 8._o the_o church_n be_v call_v catholic_n because_o it_o be_v not_o as_o the_o conventicle_n of_o heretic_n confine_v in_o certain_a country_n but_o diffuse_v through_o the_o whole_a world_n therefore_o they_o have_v not_o the_o catholic_n faith_n that_o be_v in_o a_o part_n and_o not_o in_o the_o whole_a which_o christ_n have_v redeem_a and_o must_v reign_v with_o christ_n they_o that_o confess_v in_o the_o creed_n that_o they_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n and_o be_v divide_v into_o party_n hold_v not_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n which_o unity_n believer_n be_v of_o one_o heart_n and_o soul_n proper_o belong_v to_o the_o catholic_n church_n so_o far_o this_o apol._n of_o the_o emperor_n here_o you_o see_v what_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v and_o that_o the_o papalines_n be_v then_o a_o little_a sect_n of_o thirteen_o or_o a_o few_o more_o bishop_n and_o now_o reader_n open_v thy_o eye_n and_o judge_n whether_o the_o emperor_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o western_a church_n beside_o all_o the_o rest_n a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o christian_a word_n be_v therefore_o no_o univocal_a but_o equivocal_a christian_n because_o a_o papal_a faction_n and_o a_o equivocate_a jesuit_n may_v call_v they_o so_o all_o this_o the_o prudent_a disputer_n think_v best_a to_o answer_v by_o silence_n §_o 44._o i_o add_v because_o of_o their_o noise_n of_o heresy_n charge_v on_o the_o abassine_n syrian_n armenian_n greek_n protestant_n etc._n etc._n 1._o that_o they_o differ_v in_o great_a matter_n yea_o de_fw-fr fide_fw-la than_o many_o thing_n which_o they_o call_v heresy_n be_v 1._o i_o repeat_v the_o difference_n of_o their_o council_n const._n and_o basil_n against_o late_a and_o florence_n etc._n etc._n 2._o pighius_fw-la word_n hierarch_n eccl._n l._n 6._o that_o these_o council_n go_v against_o the_o undoubted_a faith_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o
instance_n of_o goth_n dane_n swede_n examine_v sect._n 4_o 5._o whether_o extra_fw-la imperial_a church_n be_v under_o the_o pope_n sect._n 5._o in_o what_o case_n some_o be_v and_o which_o his_o pretence_n to_o the_o indian_n armenian_n and_o persian_n examine_v sect._n 6._o the_o tradition_n of_o these_o church_n be_v against_o popery_n sect_n 7._o his_o notorious_a fiction_n about_o the_o subjection_n of_o the_o indian_n armenian_n and_o abassine_n to_o rome_n sect._n 9_o 10._o of_o pisanus_n arabic_a nicene_n canon_n sect._n 11._o he_o intend_v to_o write_v a_o tractate_n to_o prove_v that_o extraneous_a bishop_n be_v at_o the_o council_n but_o that_o put-off_a go_v for_o a_o answer_n sect._n 12._o he_o confess_v that_o the_o very_a gallicane_n and_o spanish_a liturgy_n mention_v not_o the_o pope_n sovereignty_n no_o more_o than_o the_o ethiopic_a sect._n 13._o when_o constantine_n entreat_v the_o king_n of_o persia_n for_o the_o church_n there_o the_o pope_n do_v not_o command_v there_o sect._n 14._o whether_o before_o gregory_n mission_n the_o british_a church_n be_v ever_o subject_a to_o the_o pope_n or_o heretical_a sect._n 15._o reynerius_n word_n vindicate_v viz._n the_o church_n of_o the_o armenian_n ethiopian_n and_o indian_n and_o the_o rest_n which_o the_o apostle_n convert_v be_v not_o under_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n sect._n 16._o the_o 28._o can._n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n vindicate_v which_o declare_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v but_o the_o first_o patriarch_n in_o the_o empire_n by_o humane_a right_n for_o the_o sake_n of_o the_o imperial_a city_n sect._n 17._o 18_o 19_o 20._o his_o brave_a attempt_n to_o prove_v that_o extra-imperial_a bishop_n be_v summon_v to_o the_o council_n at_o nice_a of_o john_n persidis_fw-la armenian_n gothia_n at_o ephes._n 1_o thebamnon_n bishop_n of_o coptus_n sect._n 21._o 22._o his_o other_o citation_n confute_v sect._n 23._o of_o eusebius_n his_o circular_a letter_n sect._n 24._o chap._n 4._o the_o emperor_n and_o not_o the_o pope_n call_v the_o old_a council_n sect._n 1_o myraeus_n his_o notitia_fw-la episcopat_fw-la against_o he_o sect._n 2._o of_o the_o authority_n over_o the_o barbarous_a give_v con._n calce_v c._n 28._o proof_n that_o the_o papal_a power_n be_v hold_v to_o be_v but_o jure_fw-la humano_fw-la sect._n 5._o he_o be_v over_o but_o one_o empire_n sect._n 6._o no_o council_n but_o of_o one_o empire_n prosper_v testimony_n examine_v &_o caput_fw-la mundi_fw-la expound_v sect._n 7._o pope_n leo_n word_n examine_v sect._n 8_o 9_o the_o decretal_a epistle_n show_v the_o pope_n rule_v not_o the_o world_n sect._n 10._o more_o of_o ethiopia_n and_o pisanus_n canon_n sect._n 11._o chap._n 5._o the_o case_n re●…eated_v the_o uselessness_n of_o his_o testimony_n therein_o chap._n 6._o the_o vanity_n of_o his_o proof_n that_o council_n be_v call_v general_n as_o to_o all_o the_o world_n and_o not_o only_o to_o the_o empire_n from_o the_o word_n totius_fw-la orbis_fw-la from_o the_o end_n the_o peace_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o rest_n sect._n 1_o 2_o 3_o 4_o 5_o 6_o 7._o his_o question_n answer_v what_o heretic_n be_v christian_n sect._n 8_o 9_o 10_o 11._o he_o say_v that_o no_o heretic_n believe_v for_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n reveal_v and_o so_o acquit_v all_o that_o do_v but_o believe_v that_o god_n be_v true_a which_o be_v all_o that_o believe_v indeed_o that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n sect._n 12._o of_o sufficiency_n of_o proposal_n of_o truth_n it_o be_v not_o equal_a he_o absolve_v heretic_n and_o make_v heretic_n of_o the_o papist_n sect._n 13_o 14_o 15._o whether_o the_o papist_n and_o protestant_n be_v one_o church_n whether_o the_o pope_n and_o christ_n be_v two_o head_n whether_o a_o king_n that_o say_v god_n have_v make_v i_o the_o vicegod_n of_o all_o the_o earth_n set_v not_o up_o a_o policy_n destinct_n from_o god_n sect._n 16._o one_o call_v a_o papist_n may_v be_v a_o christian_n and_o another_o not_o sect._n 17._o 18._o chap._n 7._o whether_o we_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n as_o the_o old_a heretic_n do_v sect._n 1_o whether_o we_o separate_v from_o other_o church_n as_o we_o do_v from_o the_o papal_a sect._n 2._o arrian_n separate_v from_o the_o church_n as_o christian_a sect._n 3_o why_o they-call_a u_fw-mi schismatic_n sect._n 4._o 5._o papist_n agree_v not_o whether_o heretic_n be_v in_o the_o church_n sect._n 6._o what_o we_o hold_v herein_o sect._n 6._o his_o absurd_a answer_n sect._n 7._o whether_o every_o man_n deny_v christ_n veracity_n who_o receive_v not_o every_o truth_n sufficient_o propose_v sect._n 8_o 9_o he_o make_v it_o a_o grand_a novelty_n of_o i_o to_o say_v that_o there_o may_v be_v division_n in_o the_o church_n and_o not_o from_o the_o church_n because_o the_o church_n be_v a_o most_o perfect_a unity_n the_o shame_n of_o this_o charge_n sect._n 10_o 11._o his_o charge_n of_o eutychianisme_n on_o the_o abassine_n etc._n etc._n sect._n 12._o of_o self-conceited_a hereticate_a wit_n sect._n 12._o whether_o the_o abassine_n confess_v themselves_o eutichianes_n sect._n 14._o of_o the_o greek_a church_n reject_v we_o sect._n 16._o the_o greek_a church_n claim_v not_o sovereignty_n over_o all_o the_o world_n but_o in_o the_o empire_n sect._n 17_o 18_o 19_o whether_o every_o child_n subject_n or_o neighbour_n must_v judge_n heretic_n and_o avoid_v they_o unsentence_v sect._n 20._o his_o false_a answer_n to_o the_o testimony_n of_o their_o own_o writer_n that_o free_a the_o greek_n from_o heresy_n sect._n 21._o the_o witness_n of_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n that_o the_o greek_n mean_v orthodox_o sect._n 23._o nilus_n testimony_n vindicate_v sect._n 24_o our_o unity_n with_o greek_n and_o other_o sect._n 25._o a_o notable_a passage_n of_o meletius_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o constantinople_n for_o the_o sole_a headship_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o pope_n usurpation_n novelty_n and_o forsake_v tradition_n which_o with_o cyril_n testimony_n w._n j._n pass_v over_o sect._n 26._o the_o answer_n to_o w._n j_n second_o part_n of_o his_o reply_n sect._n 1_o sufficient_a answer_n to_o all_o his_o citation_n pretermit_v in_o term_n sect._n 2._o because_o i_o cite_v a_o patriarch_n and_o council_n excommunicate_v a_o pope_n by_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n countenance_n he_o say_v i_o plead_v for_o rebellion_n sect._n 4._o his_o instance_n of_o the_o pope_n extraneous_a power_n confute_v sect._n 5._o his_o particular_a proof_n before_o promise_v in_o a_o special_a tract_n examine_v 1._o his_o error_n of_o theophilus_n gothiae_n sect._n 6._o 2._o of_o domnus_n bosphori_n his_o gross_a error_n sect._n 7._o 3._o of_o joh._n persidis_fw-la sect._n 8._o 4._o of_o bishop_n of_o scythia_n sect._n 9_o 5._o of_o etherius_fw-la anchialensis_n for_o sebastianus_n sect._n 10._o 6._o of_o phaebamnon_n copti_n sect._n 11._o 7._o of_o theodulus_n esulae_n so_o false_o call_v sect._n 12._o 8._o of_o theodorus_n gadarorum_n sect._n 13._o 9_o of_o antipater_n bostrorum_fw-la sect._n 14._o 10._o of_o olympius_n schythopoleos_n sect._n 15._o 11._o of_o eusebius_n gentis_fw-la saracenorum_n sect._n 16._o 12._o constantinus_n bostrorum_fw-la sect._n 17._o 13._o one_o pro_fw-la glaco_fw-it gerassae_fw-la all_o show_v his_o gross_a ignorance_n of_o the_o bishopric_n of_o the_o empire_n sect._n 19_o the_o nestorian_n epistle_n at_o the_o council_n ephes._n to_o callimores_n rex_fw-la expound_v sect._n 20_o 21._o remark_n upon_o passage_n in_o the_o first_o ephisine_n council_n sect._n 22._o remark_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n sect._n 23._o of_o the_o title_n caput_fw-la mundi_fw-la mater_fw-la omnium_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la primatus_fw-la apostolicus_n etc._n etc._n give_v to_o antioch_n and_o jerusalem_n sect._n 24._o binnius_n confession_n that_o at_o conc._n const._n 1._o the_o pope_n preside_v not_o per_fw-la se_fw-la vel_fw-la per_fw-la legatos_fw-la sect._n 25._o his_o assertion_n that_o the_o council_n pretend_v to_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o church_n through_o all_o the_o world_n examine_v sect._n 26._o the_o vanity_n of_o his_o first_o proof_n sect._n 27_o 28._o of_o his_o second_o and_o three_o more_o note_n of_o the_o council_n calce_v sect._n 29._o his_o four_o instance_n confute_v sect._n 30._o his_o five_o confute_v sect._n 31._o his_o six_o confute_v sect._n 32._o his_o last_o instance_n vain_a sect._n 33._o he_o can_v not_o disprove_v the_o roman_a church_n from_o be_v real_o two_o church_n name_v one_o as_o have_v two_o supreme_a head_n sect._n 34._o i_o can_v not_o entreat_v he_o by_o any_o provocation_n to_o prove_v the_o continue_a visibility_n of_o the_o church_n as_o papal_n part_n iii_o a_o defence_n of_o my_o argument_n for_o our_o continue_a visibility_n sect._n 1_o whether_o all_o believer_n be_v christian_n sect._n 2._o the_o vanity_n of_o his_o next_o cavil_v against_o my_o definition_n sect._n 3_o my_o definition_n of_o protestant_n vindicate_v sect._n 4._o one_o may_v have_v communion_n with_o faulty_a church_n sect._n 5._o
part_n that_o be_v there_o if_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o there_o be_v there_o fire_n water_n air_n earth_n gold_n silver_z or_o man_n or_o devil_n create_v by_o god_n i_o neither_o know_v nor_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v or_o be_v not_o a_o sadducee_n or_o a_o atheist_n may_v believe_v that_o all_o that_o be_v in_o heaven_n be_v good_a be_v this_o a_o implicit_a actual_a belief_n that_o god_n angel_n and_o spirit_n be_v good_a when_o he_o believe_v not_o that_o in_o heaven_n or_o anywhere_o else_o there_o be_v any_o god_n or_o any_o angel_n or_o spirit_n a_o protestant_n believe_v that_o he_o can_v prove_v by_o the_o bible_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v a_o traitor_n against_o christ_n by_o claim_v his_o prerogative_n do_v he_o also_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v christ_n vicar-general_n because_o he_o believe_v that_o the_o bible_n be_v true_a protestant_n believe_v that_o all_o tradition_n be_v true_a which_o real_o come_v down_o to_o we_o from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n by_o credible_a evidence_n do_v it_o follow_v that_o they_o believe_v the_o papist_n tradition_n to_o be_v true_a when_o they_o believe_v multitude_n of_o they_o to_o be_v novelty_n or_o fiction_n contrary_a to_o scripture_n and_o to_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o church_n the_o papist_n woman_n mention_v by_o dr._n white_n believe_v the_o creed_n but_o she_o know_v and_o believe_v no_o more_o of_o jesus_n christ_n but_o that_o it_o be_v some_o good_a thing_n she_o know_v not_o what_o or_o else_o it_o will_v not_o have_v be_v in_o the_o creed_n but_o he_o go_v on_o you_o profess_v to_o believe_v that_o all_o man_n shall_v rise_v at_o the_o last_o come_n of_o christ_n and_o yet_o you_o have_v no_o actual_a knowledge_n of_o many_o thousand_o ans._n and_o what_o then_o if_o i_o know_v not_o that_o those_o thousand_o have_v a_o be_v and_o be_v man_n i_o can_v know_v or_o believe_v that_o they_o shall_v rise_v notwithstanding_o i_o believe_v that_o all_o shall_v rise_v and_o if_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o this_o or_o that_o or_o thousand_o that_o you_o may_v name_n shall_v rise_v i_o know_v not_o because_o i_o know_v not_o whether_o you_o feign_v not_o man_n that_o never_o be_v if_o any_o be_v so_o foolish_a as_o not_o to_o know_v that_o there_o ever_o be_v more_o man_n in_o the_o world_n than_o he_o have_v see_v he_o can_v believe_v that_o any_o more_o shall_v rise_v and_o yet_o may_v believe_v that_o all_o shall_v rise_v not_o all_o in_o true_a reality_n as_o signify_v the_o whole_a that_o have_v exi_v indeed_o but_o all_o as_o the_o subject-term_n in_o the_o proposition_n when_o i_o say_v all_o shall_v rise_v i_o do_v not_o only_o say_v that_o i_o believe_v that_o proposition_n but_o i_o know_v many_o individual_n contain_v in_o the_o whole_a and_o i_o know_v that_o there_o be_v more_o than_o i_o personal_o know_v and_o that_o there_o have_v be_v more_o than_o i_o have_v hear_v of_o and_o by_o the_o word_n all_o i_o mean_v all_o these_o particular_n inclusive_o and_o so_o the_o word_n be_v a_o general_n express_v a_o totum_fw-la some_o of_o who_o part_n i_o have_v know_v by_o sight_n and_o other_o by_o history_n and_o i_o know_v that_o other_o part_n have_v be_v but_o some_o part_n i_o know_v not_o at_o all_o that_o they_o have_v be_v according_o my_o belief_n be_v according_a to_o the_o object_n partly_o singular_a partly_o particular_a partly_o indefinite_a and_o partly_o universal_a he_o proceed_v act._n 24._o 5_o 14._o credens_fw-fr omnibus_fw-la quae_fw-la in_o lege_fw-la &_o prophetis_fw-la scripta_fw-la sunt_fw-la yet_o paul_n have_v not_o a_o actual_a understanding_n of_o every_o particular_a contain_v in_o they_o ans._n then_o he_o have_v not_o a_o actual_a belief_n of_o those_o particular_n he_o believe_v in_o general_a that_o all_o god_n word_n be_v true_a and_o he_o believe_v all_o in_o particular_a which_o he_o know_v to_o be_v part_n of_o that_o word_n but_o when_o he_o think_v that_o he_o ought_v to_o do_v many_o thing_n against_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n and_o persecute_v and_o blaspheme_v he_o have_v he_o then_o a_o actual_a belief_n that_o this_o jesus_n be_v the_o messiah_n he_o add_v a_o christian_a that_o have_v forget_v some_o sin_n yet_o at_o death_n be_v sorrowful_a for_o all_o his_o sin_n have_v he_o no_o actual_a sorrow_n for_o that_o forget_a sin_n i_o answer_v no_o if_o he_o have_v no_o actual_a understanding_n of_o it_o there_o be_v some_o that_o christ_n foretell_v will_v think_v that_o they_o do_v god_n service_n by_o kill_v his_o servant_n do_v you_o think_v that_o if_o these_o repent_v of_o all_o sin_n in_o general_a and_o take_v this_o for_o a_o duty_n that_o this_o be_v a_o actual_a repentance_n for_o this_o sin_n nay_o be_v a_o mere_a general_a repentance_n any_o actual_a repentance_n at_o all_o if_o it_o extend_v to_o no_o particular_n if_o a_o man_n say_v i_o repent_v of_o all_o my_o sin_n but_o i_o think_v i_o have_v no_o sin_n but_o my_o hear_n pray_v be_v a_o christian_n etc._n etc._n do_v he_o actual_o repent_v of_o any_o and_o as_o to_o your_o instance_n if_o you_o do_v but_o forget_v a_o sin_n it_o imply_v that_o you_o do_v once_o remember_v it_o and_o perhaps_o repent_v of_o it_o then_o but_o if_o you_o know_v not_o or_o remember_v not_o that_o ever_o you_o commit_v any_o such_o thing_n or_o that_o it_o be_v any_o sin_n you_o have_v no_o actual_a repentance_n of_o that_o sin_n o_o but_o say_v he_o what_o horrid_a doctrine_n will_v this_o be_v ans._n what_o a_o childish_a exclamation_n be_v this_o it_o be_v ten_o to_o one_o but_o if_o you_o be_v well_o examine_v 10._o yourself_o you_o will_v confess_v that_o all_o this_o quarrel_n be_v but_o de_fw-fr nomine_fw-la you_o confess_v that_o here_o be_v no_o particular_a repentance_n or_o faith_n of_o the_o thing_n in_o question_n nor_o be_v universals_z as_o contain_v the_o particular_n know_v confuse_o in_o themselves_o but_o with_o the_o bare_a name_n of_o a_o actual_a knowledge_n of_o particular_n you_o will_v cheat_v they_o that_o have_v only_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o universal_a proposition_n that_o you_o may_v see_v it_o be_v no_o horrid_a doctrine_n consider_v that_o 1._o if_o this_o general_a repentance_n have_v also_o join_v a_o particular_a repentance_n of_o all_o such_o sin_n as_o must_v be_v so_o repent_v of_o of_o necessity_n to_o salvation_n than_o a_o virtual_a repentance_n of_o other_o forget_a particular_a sin_n will_v prove_v sufficient_a to_o pardon_v and_o salvation_n a_o general_a repentance_n which_o have_v a_o actual_a hatred_n of_o sin_n as_o sin_n and_o a_o habit_n incline_v the_o person_n unfeigned_o to_o repent_v of_o all_o sin_n when_o he_o know_v it_o join_v with_o a_o actual_a repentance_n of_o all_o that_o he_o know_v and_o a_o faithful_a endeavour_n to_o know_v all_o this_o be_v not_o a_o actual_a repentance_n of_o the_o unknown_a particular_n but_o it_o may_v be_v call_v a_o virtual_a repentance_n of_o they_o because_o there_o be_v that_o cause_n that_o virtue_n that_o grace_n which_o will_v produce_v a_o actual_a repentance_n if_o the_o impediment_n of_o forgetfulness_n be_v remove_v but_o even_o confuse_a actual_a repentance_n have_v not_o a_o total_a oblivion_n or_o ignorance_n of_o the_o particular_n but_o only_o a_o confuse_a knowledge_n and_o memory_n of_o they_o and_o be_v another_o thing_n than_o the_o knowledge_n of_o universals_z he_o add_v one_o that_o forgive_v all_o injury_n and_o have_v forget_v some_o do_v he_o not_o forgive_v those_o forget_v ans._n yes_o if_o the_o word_n forgiveness_n signify_v the_o effect_n or_o his_o act_n as_o sufficient_a to_o that_o effect_n for_o it_o be_v in_o his_o power_n to_o discharge_v acquit_v or_o forgive_v another_o by_o a_o mere_a general_a remission_n or_o discharge_n though_o he_o remember_v but_o one_o or_o no_o particular_a at_o all_o but_o if_o by_o forgive_a you_o mean_v a_o act_n of_o his_o will_n who_o object_n be_v the_o crime_n as_o well_o as_o the_o punishment_n and_o evil_a consequent_n remit_v he_o so_o actual_o forgive_v in_o his_o own_o mental_a act_n no_o more_o than_o he_o know_v but_o his_o general_a forgiveness_n suffice_v to_o all_o the_o end_n without_o it_o and_o such_o a_o sufficient_a remission_n go_v common_o by_o the_o name_n of_o full_a forgiveness_n but_o instead_o of_o speak_v to_o the_o point_n in_o hand_n you_o play_v with_o ambiguous_a word_n of_o another_o sense_n and_o subject_n forgive_a another_o be_v a_o act_n of_o the_o will_n who_o effect_n be_v extrinsical_a and_o as_o a_o man_n may_v burn_v a_o house_n or_o give_v away_o or_o sell_v a_o house_n and_o all_o that_o be_v in_o it_o though_o he_o know_v not_o what_o be_v in_o it_o so_o a_o man_n may_v remit_v all_o debt_n or_o penalty_n
that_o believe_v only_o that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n that_o reward_v and_o believe_v not_o in_o christ_n or_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n or_o shall_v be_v baptize_v my_o three_o question_n about_o his_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n be_v be_v it_o any_o lawful_a pastor_n or_o 23._o all_o that_o must_v necessary_o be_v depend_v on_o by_o every_o member_n who_o be_v those_o pastor_n to_o this_o he_o say_v of_o all_o respective_o to_o each_o subject_n that_o be_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o none_o of_o they_o mediate_a or_o immediate_a be_v reject_v or_o contemn_v i_o show_v he_o how_o he_o contradict_v himself_o for_o dependence_n be_v more_o than_o non-rejection_n and_o million_o of_o heathen_n neither_o depend_v on_o the_o pope_n or_o reject_v he_o that_o never_o hear_v of_o he_o to_o this_o he_o rejoin_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o subject_n only_o and_o not_o of_o other_o ans._n 1._o but_o we_o be_v never_o the_o near_o know_v their_o church_n by_o this_o while_o we_o be_v not_o tell_v who_o the_o subject_n be_v and_o what_o make_v a_o visible_a subject_n 2._o do_v not_o they_o take_v all_o infidel_n and_o heathen_n and_o the_o christian_a abassine_n armenian_n greek_n protestant_n etc._n etc._n to_o be_v subject_n of_o the_o pope_n as_o to_o obligation_n and_o right_n though_o not_o consent_v yet_o the_o abassine_n neither_o obey_v the_o pope_n nor_o reject_v he_o till_o oviedo_n be_v send_v to_o they_o 3._o for_o about_o forty_o or_o fifty_o year_n one_o part_n of_o europe_n take_v one_o man_n for_o pope_n and_o the_o rest_n take_v another_o man_n for_o pope_n and_o man_n be_v uncertain_a which_o be_v the_o right_n or_o whether_o either_o of_o they_o and_o so_o of_o the_o clergy_n authorize_v by_o they_o which_o be_v the_o church_n then_o and_o who_o be_v the_o member_n when_o million_o receive_v one_o and_o million_o reject_v he_o and_o many_o neither_o receive_v nor_o reject_v but_o remain_v in_o suspense_n 4._o and_o if_o all_o the_o priest_n shall_v desert_v a_o country_n as_o ireland_n me●…co_n or_o our_o wales_n or_o highland_n be_v all_o the_o people_n thereby_o unchristened_a or_o unchurch_v while_o they_o have_v no_o priest_n either_o to_o receive_v or_o reject_v and_o perhaps_o hear_v not_o of_o a_o pope_n but_o i_o special_o answer_v he_o that_o this_o make_v every_o priest_n so_o essential_a to_o that_o church_n that_o a_o man_n be_v unchurch_v that_o reject_v or_o contemn_v any_o one_o of_o they_o though_o he_o shall_v ●…onour_v the_o pope_n council_n and_o thousand_o other_o if_o a_o man_n take_v a_o priest_n in_o such_o a_o crime_n as_o watson_n montaltus_n and_o other_o tell_v we_o of_o be_v contemn_v he_o a_o unchristen_n of_o we_o yea_o if_o it_o be_v do_v causeless_o upon_o a_o quarrel_n this_o be_v a_o notable_a advancement_n of_o the_o clergy_n if_o contempt_n of_o one_o priest_n be_v damnation_n or_o unchristen_v we_o he_o that_o can_v make_v priest_n for_o all_o the_o world_n may_v well_o be_v lord_n of_o all_o the_o world_n even_o of_o prince_n as_o well_o as_o other_o man_n to_o this_o he_o rejoin_v that_o by_o the_o word_n respective_o he_o do_v not_o mean_v all_o priest_n but_o all_o that_o be_v pastor_n to_o that_o man_n for_o there_o be_v some_o priest_n that_o have_v no_o care_n or_o cure_v of_o soul_n commit_v to_o they_o but_o a_o private_a christian_a reject_v the_o authority_n of_o his_o parish-priest_n bishop_n archbishop_n metropolitan_a primate_n patriarch_n or_o supreme_a bishop_n become_v a_o schismatic_a and_o cast_v himself_o out_o of_o the_o church_n ans._n 1._o he_o be_v a_o strange_a priest_n that_o have_v no_o cure_n of_o soul_n what_o then_o be_v his_o office_n if_o he_o be_v not_o affix_v to_o a_o particular_a charge_n sure_o he_o have_v a_o indefinite_a cure_n of_o soul_n in_o the_o church_n universal_a 2._o then_o one_o of_o the_o next_o parish_n may_v take_v our_o parish-priest_n and_o all_o the_o parish-priest_n in_o the_o country_n save_o his_o own_o for_o heretic_n fornicator_n traitor_n and_o such_o as_o must_v be_v reject_v and_o yet_o be_v no_o schismatic_a but_o a_o church-member_n but_o if_o i_o reverence_v all_o other_o priest_n and_o take_v our_o own_o parish-priest_n for_o a_o ignorant_a sot_n or_o a_o knave_n or_o a_o wicked_a man_n and_o contem●…_n he_o i_o be_o cut_v off_o from_o the_o church_n this_o tell_v we_o more_o reason_n than_o i_o know_v of_o before_o for_o our_o canon_n against_o go_v from_o our_o own_o parish-church_n when_o we_o have_v no_o preacher_n there_o and_o this_o ell_n i_o how_o great_a the_o power_n of_o patron_n be_v who_o can_v make_v a_o ignorant_a wicked_a man_n so_o absolute_a a_o lord_n of_o all_o his_o parishioner_n though_o they_o be_v the_o great_a lord_n that_o to_o contemn_v he_o shall_v cost_v they_o their_o damnation_n and_o this_o tell_v i_o more_o than_o i_o know_v before_o that_o the_o roman_a clergy_n do_v not_o plead_v for_o the_o pope_n for_o his_o sake_n only_o but_o for_o their_o own_o if_o all_o man_n be_v in_o as_o much_o danger_n of_o damnation_n or_o unchurch_v for_o reject_v any_o parish-priest_n as_o for_o reject_v the_o pope_n and_o this_o tell_v i_o more_o than_o i_o know_v before_o of_o the_o great_a pre-eminence_n of_o the_o secular_a clergy_n as_o they_o call_v they_o above_o the_o regulars_n and_o how_o low_o comparative_o the_o jesuit_n and_o friar_n be_v when_o it_o will_v cut_v a_o man_n off_o from_o the_o church_n to_o contemn_v one_o sottish_a drunken_a curate_n or_o parish-priest_n that_o can_v but_o read_v mass_n and_o to_o contemn_v ten_o thousand_o friar_n and_o jesuit_n will_v not_o do_v so_o and_o this_o tell_v we_o of_o how_o great_a concernment_n parish-bound_n be_v and_o what_o a_o privilege_n it_o be_v to_o remove_v one_o dwelling_n for_o if_o i_o will_v but_o remove_v my_o dwell_n one_o yard_n out_o of_o the_o parish_n i_o may_v then_o contemn_v the_o parish-priest_n without_o be_v unchurch_v which_o on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o way_n i_o can_v not_o do_v and_o this_o 〈◊〉_d we_o why_o the_o clergy_n be_v exempt_a so_o much_o from_o prince_n and_o magistrate_n judgement_n it_o may_v cut_v off_o a_o prince_n from_o the_o church_n to_o contemn_v his_o priest_n whether_o to_o hang_v he_o if_o he_o prove_v a_o traitor_n be_v contempt_n i_o know_v not_o many_o such_o lesson_n may_v be_v hence_o learn_v 3._o but_o how_o come_v cyprian_a then_o so_o much_o mistake_v that_o say_v plebs_fw-la maximam_fw-la ●…abet_fw-la potestatem_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la indignos_fw-la recusandi_fw-la and_o how_o come_v all_o the_o ancient_a church_n to_o use_v that_o freedom_n in_o consent_v or_o di●…enting_v elect_a or_o reject_v their_o bishop_n and_o priest_n which_o blonde●…_n have_v copious_o prove_v pro_fw-la sentent_fw-fr hi●…ron_n &_o de_fw-fr jure_fw-la plebis_fw-la in_o regim_fw-la eccles._n 4._o and_o what_o a_o privilege_n have_v the_o pope_n or_o a_o patriarch_n above_o a_o inferior_a christian_n when_o he_o may_v reject_v a_o ●…housand_n priest_n or_o interdict_v whole_a kingdom_n or_o reject_v most_o christian_a church_n and_o pastor_n in_o the_o world_n as_o be_v none_o of_o christ_n and_o yet_o not_o be_v himself_o cut_v off_o for_o so_o do_v whereas_o one_o that_o fall_v out_o with_o his_o p●…rish-priest_n and_o reject_v he_o alone_o be_v presen●…ly_a ●…o_o member_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n it_o seem_v that_o god_n punish_v not_o man_n according_a to_o the_o greatness_n of_o their_o sin_n for_o sure_a it_o be_v a_o great_a sin_n unjust_o to_o reject_v ten_o thousand_o priest_n than_o one_o or_o to_o contemn_v all_o other_o priest_n in_o the_o country_n mistake_v they_o all_o for_o heretic_n usurper_n or_o in●…ollerable_a than_o so_o to_o do_v by_o one_o parish-priest_n only_o 5._o how_o many_o million_o then_o that_o seem_v to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o so_o because_o they_o contemn_v the_o authority_n of_o their_o parish-priest_n 6._o but_o what_o be_v the_o proof_n of_o this_o assertion_n none_o at_o all_o in_o other_o society_n no_o union_n be_v essential_a to_o a_o member_n but_o that_o which_o be_v with_o the_o pars_fw-la imperans_fw-la or_o supreme_a power_n and_o with_o the_o body_n a_o man_n that_o reject_v a_o justice_n or_o the_o mayor_n of_o a_o city_n or_o the_o master_n of_o a_o college_n or_o school_n etc._n etc._n may_v be_v yet_o a_o subject_n and_o a_o member_n of_o the_o kingdom_n while_o he_o reject_v not_o the_o king_n though_o he_o be_v faulty_a and_o be_v cut_v off_o from_o the_o city_n college_n or_o school_n and_o i_o think_v that_o to_o reject_v a_o parish-priest_n that_o ought_v to_o be_v so_o reject_v be_v well_o do_v and_o if_o he_o ought_v not_o it_o be_v ill_o do_v and_o that_o he_o that_o
part_n of_o the_o church_n i_o next_o tell_v he_o that_o the_o jesuit_n turnbull_n against_o rob._n baronius_n maintain_v that_o revelation_n 6._o be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o formal_a object_n of_o faith_n and_o therefore_o to_o deny_v it_o be_v not_o to_o deny_v the_o formal_a object_n 2._o and_o that_o forma_fw-la that_fw-mi nomen_fw-la and_o he_o be_v no_o heretic_n that_o be_v none_o formal_o to_o the_o latter_a he_o give_v no_o answer_n and_o to_o the_o first_o as_o bad_a as_o none_o viz._n that_o the_o heretic_n deny_v also_o the_o material_a object_n and_o what_o be_v that_o to_o the_o case_n in_o hand_n and_o that_o which_o he_o be_v oblige_v by_o sufficient_a reason_n to_o believe_v to_o be_v reveal_v of_o god_n and_o therefore_o virtual_o deny_v god_n to_o be_v true_a ans._n but_o i_o again_o reply_n 1._o virtual_a be_v not_o actual_a 2._o it_o be_v no_o virtual_a denial_n that_o god_n be_v true_a but_o only_o that_o the_o proposer_n be_v true_a to_o be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v a_o thing_n to_o be_v god_n word_n only_o prove_v that_o i_o break_v that_o obligation_n if_o i_o believe_v it_o not_o to_o be_v his_o word_n but_o not_o at_o all_o that_o i_o believe_v god_n to_o be_v a_o liar_n who_o word_n i_o believe_v it_o not_o to_o be_v again_o this_o make_v all_o christian_n to_o be_v heretic_n past_a dispute_n for_o all_o christian_n receive_v not_o something_o or_o other_o small_a or_o great_a which_o they_o be_v oblige_v to_o belie●…e_v to_o be_v god_n word_n do_v you_o err_v in_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v reveal_v by_o scripture_n or_o tradition_n or_o not_o if_o you_o say_v no_o and_o so_o that_o your_o understanding_n have_v no_o sin_n you_o deceive_v yourself_o and_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o in_o you_o if_o yea_o then_o be_v you_o not_o oblige_v to_o believe_v the_o contrary_a to_o be_v god_n word_n if_o not_o oblige_v than_o your_o error_n be_v no_o sin_n so_o that_o you_o make_v every_o sinful_a error_n to_o be_v heresy_n and_o proud_o deny_v that_o you_o have_v any_o sinful_a error_n lest_o you_o shall_v be_v a_o heretic_n i_o add_v that_o their_o church_n be_v constitute_v of_o man_n that_o sinful_o neglect_v some_o point_n of_o truth_n or_o other_o sufficient_o propose_v ergo_fw-la be_v it_o constitute_v of_o heretic_n 7._o to_o this_o he_o answer_v that_o whatever_o their_o neglect_n be_v to_o know_v what_o be_v propound_v yet_o so_o long_o as_o they_o believe_v explicit_o what_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v so_o believe_v necessitate_v medii_fw-la and_o implicit_o the_o rest_n they_o can_v be_v no_o hereitck_n for_o it_o be_v not_o the_o ignorance_n though_o culpable_a but_o contradiction_n to_o what_o be_v know_v damn_v to_o they_o to_o be_v propound_v by_o those_o that_o have_v power_n to_o oblige_v they_o as_o be_v their_o lawful_a superior_n which_o make_v a_o heretic_n r._n b._n 1._o but_o still_o you_o agree_v not_o nor_o tell_v we_o what_o be_v explicit_o to_o be_v believe_v necessary_o 2._o by_o this_o we_o be_v all_o absolve_v from_o heresy_n for_o we_o believe_v all_o explicitly_a that_o be_v necssary_a necessitate_v medii_fw-la and_o all_o the_o rest_n implicit_o by_o a_o double_a implicit_a faith_n 1._o in_o god_n and_o our_o redeemer_n 2._o in_o the_o inspire_a apostle_n and_o prophet_n we_o believe_v all_o to_o be_v true_a which_o god_n have_v reveal_v and_o which_o his_o apostle_n have_v deliver_v as_o god_n word_n 3._o yea_o and_o all_o that_o we_o know_v to_o be_v propound_v by_o any_o oblige_a superior_n for_o we_o know_v not_o the_o pope_n nor_o your_o contradictory_n council_n to_o be_v such_o my_o next_o qu._n 2._o be_v what_o mean_v you_o by_o sufficient_a proposal_n 8._o w._n i._n such_o as_o be_v sufficient_a among_o man_n in_o humanis_fw-la to_o oblige_v one_o to_o take_v notice_n that_o a_o king_n have_v exact_v such_o and_o such_o law_n etc._n etc._n that_o be_v a_o public_a testimony_n that_o such_o thing_n be_v reveal_v by_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o those_o who_o be_v the_o high_a tribunal_n of_o god_n church_n or_o by_o notorious_a and_o universal_a tr●…dition_n r._n b._n 1._o here_o the_o reader_n may_v see_v that_o he_o take_v sufficiency_n respective_o to_o the_o promulgator_n viz._n as_o much_o as_o he_o be_v oblige_v to_o do_v for_o a_o king_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o publish_v his_o law_n in_o every_o parish_n or_o county_n but_o only_o to_o make_v such_o a_o publication_n of_o they_o in_o the_o chief_a place_n of_o his_o kingdom_n as_o that_o man_n may_v take_v notice_n of_o they_o king_n send_v not_o schoolmaster_n to_o teach_v every_o man_n how_o to_o prove_v that_o his_o law_n be_v not_o counterfeit_v and_o what_o they_o be_v and_o what_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o they_o for_o the_o enact_v of_o they_o be_v a_o late_a matter_n of_o fact_n and_o easy_o notify_v as_o near_o unto_o they_o and_o no_o other_o knowledge_n or_o belief_n of_o they_o be_v require_v but_o such_o as_o be_v necessary_a to_o that_o part_n of_o the_o obedience_n of_o they_o which_o belong_v to_o every_o man_n in_o his_o place_n this_o be_v not_o necessary_a and_o if_o such_o a_o publication_n of_o god_n law_n be_v sufficient_a million_o that_o never_o hear_v a_o word_n of_o the_o bible_n or_o what_o christ_n be_v have_v such_o a_o sufficient_a publication_n for_o the_o gospel_n be_v publish_v in_o many_o part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o perhaps_o in_o many_o place_n of_o the_o kingdom_n where_o they_o dwell_v though_o they_o never_o hear_v it_o 2._o but_o when_o man_n have_v the_o public_a testimony_n that_o such_o statute_n be_v make_v and_o such_o a_o book_n send_v from_o god_n this_o do_v not_o acquaint_v man_n what_o those_o statutesor_n that_o book_n contain_v sothat_o by_o this_o rule_n it_o shall_v be_v sufficient_a to_o know_v that_o god_n make_v the_o bible_n without_o know_v what_o be_v in_o it_o or_o else_o he_o that_o be_v but_o tell_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o book_n be_v bind_v by_o that_o much_o to_o know_v all_o that_o be_v in_o it_o 3._o but_o note_v the_o popish_a difficulty_n of_o faith_n w._n i._n tell_v we_o after_o the_o rest_n that_o we_o must_v know_v these_o thing_n reveal_v by_o the_o infallible_a authority_n of_o those_o who_o be_v the_o high_a tribunal_n of_o god_n church_n etc._n etc._n and_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o one_o that_o know_v nothing_o of_o christ_n or_o the_o scripture_n or_o that_o christ_n have_v a_o church_n to_o know_v yet_o 1._o that_o he_o have_v a_o church_n 2._o and_o that_o he_o have_v authorize_v some_o man_n to_o be_v the_o high_a tribunal_n to_o judge_n that_o church_n through_o all_o the_o world_n and_o 3._o that_o he_o have_v particular_o authorize_v they_o to_o judge_n which_o be_v and_o be_v not_o his_o revelation_n 4._o and_o to_o know_v who_o be_v the_o man_n that_o be_v this_o high_a tribunal_n to_o all_o the_o world_n viz._n for_o those_o of_o abassia_n that_o have_v not_o so_o much_o history_n as_o to_o tell_v they_o that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o city_n as_o rome_n or_o such_o a_o man_n as_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o world_n till_o oviedo_n be_v send_v who_o tell_v it_o but_o to_o few_o can_v yet_o know_v that_o this_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n be_v their_o judge_n and_o from_o they_o they_o must_v receive_v the_o gospel_n 5._o and_o to_o know_v that_o this_o universal_a tribunal_n be_v infallible_a before_o they_o believe_v in_o christ_n himself_o who_o be_v suppose_v to_o give_v they_o their_o infallibility_n alas_o must_v every_o poor_a infidel_n know_v all_o this_o before_o he_o can_v believe_v in_o christ_n when_o we_o that_o live_v among_o they_o and_o read_v their_o law_n and_o doctrine_n can_v easy_o believe_v the_o infallibility_n of_o those_o pope_n who_o by_o general_a council_n be_v charge_v not_o only_o with_o murder_n adultery_n simony_n perjury_n etc._n etc._n but_o with_o heresy_n also_o or_o infidelity_n nor_o the_o infallibility_n of_o those_o general_a council_n who_o be_v accuse_v by_o pope_n and_o by_o other_o council_n of_o error_n heresy_n or_o schism_n 4._o but_o he_o add_v another_o way_n or_o by_o notorious_a and_o universal_a tradition_n and_o 1._o if_o this_o will_v 9_o serve_v than_o i_o hope_v we_o may_v have_v true_a faith_n that_o believe_v no_o humane_a infallible_a tribunal_n over_o all_o the_o world_n much_o less_o that_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o council_n be_v such_o a_o tribunal_n for_o we_o have_v notorious_a universal_a tradition_n deliver_v we_o all_o our_o religion_n 2._o but_o yet_o these_o be_v hard_a term_n for_o every_o poor_a heathen_a to_o come_v to_o christ_n by_o alas_o how_o shall_v the_o million_o of_o people_n through_o the_o world_n who_o know_v nothing_o that_o be_v many_o day_n journey_n from_o their_o house_n know_v
church_n do_v notorious_o believe_v and_o practise_v the_o administration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n in_o both_o kind_n the_o cup_n as_o well_o as_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o celebration_n of_o public_a worship_n in_o a_o know_a tongue_n and_o the_o read_n and_o hear_v of_o the_o scripture_n in_o a_o know_a tongue_n by_o the_o people_n and_o other_o such_o like_a but_o yet_o i_o will_v not_o take_v you_o at_o your_o word_n nor_o call_v you_o heretic_n mere_o on_o the_o account_n assert_v by_o you_o for_o i_o know_v that_o your_o rule_n be_v false_a and_o if_o a_o man_n have_v know_v that_o the_o universal_a church_n have_v hold_v some_o opinion_n of_o chronology_n or_o genealogy_n or_o cosmography_n as_o about_o cainan_n or_o the_o age_n of_o sem_fw-mi or_o that_o there_o be_v no_o artipode_n especial_o in_o the_o dismal_a nine_o century_n and_o if_o he_o have_v think_v that_o they_o take_v this_o point_n for_o a_o divine_a revelation_n believe_v the_o septuagint_n or_o some_o other_o mistranslation_n which_o be_v common_o receive_v before_o jeromes_n time_n this_o man_n so_o think_v that_o the_o whole_a church_n then_o err_v in_o so_o small_a a_o point_n be_v no_o heretic_n for_o so_o think_v for_o i_o will_v know_v of_o yourself_o whether_o the_o pope_n and_o all_o their_o follower_n be_v not_o heretic_n for_o the_o septuagint_n be_v long_o take_v by_o the_o universal_a church_n for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o so_o be_v the_o vulgar_a latin_a long_v after_o by_o your_o universal_a roman_a church_n and_o consequent_o that_o those_o text_n be_v god_n word_n which_o yet_o afterward_o you_o alter_v many_o hundred_o or_o thousand_o alteration_n in_o the_o one_o be_v make_v by_o sixtus_n 5_o and_o clement_n 8_o all_o which_o be_v so_o many_o judgement_n that_o the_o church_n have_v err_v that_o before_o take_v the_o other_o reading_n for_o the_o word_n of_o god_n unless_o you_o can_v make_v one_o thing_n god_n word_n to_o day_n and_o the_o contrary_a to_o morrow_n 5._o but_o by_o this_o rule_n also_o we_o be_v acquit_v from_o heresy_n if_o it_o be_v not_o notorious_a to_o we_o that_o the_o universal_a church_n believe_v and_o practise_v contrary_a to_o we_o which_o sure_o be_v notorious_a to_o very_a few_o at_o most_o and_o indeed_o we_o differ_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o more_o because_o we_o dare_v not_o with_o they_o differ_v from_o the_o belief_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n in_o this_o and_o in_o former_a age_n r._n b._n be_v not_o the_o bible_n a_o public_a testimony_n and_o record_n and_o be_v universal_o receive_v be_v a_o universal_a tradition_n and_o yet_o abundance_n of_o truth_n in_o it_o be_v not_o actual_o know_v or_o believe_v by_o most_o of_o your_o own_o church_n w._n j._n it_o be_v only_o a_o tradition_n that_o whatever_o be_v there_o deliver_v be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o it_o be_v no_o tradition_n that_o such_o a_o determinate_a sense_n and_o no_o other_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o every_o sentence_n 13._o contain_v in_o it_o when_o according_a to_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n the_o word_n be_v capable_a of_o many_o sense_n r._n b._n worse_o and_o worse_o still_o 1._o tradition_n tell_v we_o that_o this_o bible_n be_v god_n word_n this_o word_n of_o god_n be_v significant_a and_o intelligible_a or_o else_o it_o be_v worse_a and_o more_o defective_a than_o the_o common_a word_n of_o man_n this_o intelligible_a bible_n or_o word_n therefore_o deliver_v to_o we_o its_o own_o sense_n if_o not_o than_o council_n do_v not_o deliver_v we_o the_o sense_n of_o god_n word_n or_o their_o own_o for_o god_n can_v speak_v as_o well_o as_o they_o and_o their_o word_n be_v no_o more_o plain_a than_o he_o yet_o a_o multitude_n of_o plain_a intelligible_a text_n be_v not_o understand_v by_o many_o of_o your_o church_n who_o you_o call_v not_o heretic_n yea_o your_o learned_a commentator_n differ_v and_o fight_v about_o their_o sense_n 2._o therefore_o when_o you_o talk_v of_o every_o sentence_n you_o do_v but_o fly_v and_o hide_v your_o fraud_n if_o your_o meaning_n be_v that_o no_o sentence_n of_o scripture_n be_v divine_a revelation_n as_o they_o be_v in_o god_n own_o word_n but_o as_o expound_v by_o your_o church_n all_o christian_a ear_n shall_v abhor_v your_o blasphemy_n if_o you_o mean_v only_o that_o there_o be_v some_o text_n so_o difficult_a as_o that_o most_o christian_n can_v understand_v they_o or_o that_o be_v capable_a of_o various_a sense_n we_o grant_v it_o but_o what_o be_v those_o to_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v every_o man_n a_o heretic_n that_o err_v about_o the_o sense_n of_o any_o one_o plain_a text_n of_o scripture_n or_o not_o and_o it_o be_v perverse_a that_o you_o say_v of_o divers_a sense_n according_a to_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n for_o a_o text_n may_v be_v expound_v contrary_a to_o the_o plain_a word_n and_o context_n which_o yet_o be_v not_o expound_v contrary_a to_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n if_o by_o that_o word_n you_o mean_v as_o be_v usual_a contrary_a to_o the_o harmony_n of_o christian_a necessary_a truth_n yea_o or_o contrary_a to_o any_o other_o truth_n whatever_o save_o that_o text_n itself_o and_o now_o reader_n i_o leave_v it_o to_o thy_o reason_n whether_o this_o man_n have_v give_v we_o any_o regardable_a notice_n at_o all_o what_o be_v heresy_n or_o what_o they_o mean_v by_o it_o or_o have_v not_o trifle_v and_o say_v nothing_o but_o what_o heresy_n be_v i_o will_v brief_o tell_v you_o the_o word_n signify_v election_n be_v use_v in_o the_o begin_n sometime_o for_o any_o sect_n or_o party_n divide_v from_o the_o common_a body_n of_o the_o 14._o church_n and_o christian_n be_v call_v a_o heresy_n by_o the_o jew_n by_o the_o christian_n the_o name_n signify_v any_o party_n of_o man_n that_o profess_v to_o differ_v in_o some_o necessary_a thing_n from_o the_o common_a body_n of_o christian_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v separate_v from_o they_o as_o unmeet_a for_o their_o communion_n and_o gather_v themselves_o into_o divide_a society_n so_o that_o differ_v from_o the_o apostolical_a doctrine_n and_o church_n and_o make_v different_a sect_n or_o society_n therefore_o which_o separate_v from_o and_o oppose_v the_o church_n be_v call_v heresy_n by_o the_o apostle_n and_o it_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n with_o the_o gross_a sort_n of_o schism_n and_o the_o common_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n schism_n than_o be_v low_a signify_v either_o the_o contentious_a make_n of_o division_n within_o a_o church_n without_o separate_n from_o it_o or_o else_o the_o break_n of_o one_o church_n into_o many_o without_o separate_v from_o other_o church_n or_o the_o generality_n of_o christian_n and_o so_o long_o after_o the_o word_n heresy_n be_v sometime_o use_v for_o such_o schism_n only_o and_o hence_o lucifer_n calaritanus_n and_o the_o novatian_o and_o many_o other_o be_v call_v heretic_n and_o sometime_o use_v more_o cautelous_o in_o a_o narrow_a sense_n for_o those_o only_a that_o deny_v some_o essential_a article_n of_o faith_n or_o practice_n and_o sometime_o in_o a_o yet_o narrow_a sense_n for_o those_o only_a that_o upon_o such_o a_o denial_n of_o some_o essential_a point_n do_v gather_v into_o a_o separate_a society_n to_o maintain_v their_o error_n and_o oppugn_v the_o truth_n and_o according_a to_o these_o various_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n horesie_n and_o heretic_n we_o must_v conclude_v that_o a_o heretic_n may_v or_o may_v not_o be_v save_v and_o be_v or_o be_v not_o within_o the_o universal_a church_n which_o w._n 1_n do_v deceitful_o confound_v of_o which_o i_o have_v say_v more_o in_o the_o end_n and_o show_v you_o by_o a_o instance_n of_o philastrius_n how_o mischievous_a it_o be_v to_o abuse_v the_o name_n of_o heresy_n against_o every_o different_a opinion_n of_o true_a christian_n and_o so_o to_o make_v heretic_n of_o all_o believer_n in_o the_o world_n chap._n iii_o what_o mean_v you_o by_o the_o word_n pope_n w._n j._n by_o pope_n i_o mean_v st._n peter_n or_o any_o of_o his_o lawful_a successor_n in_o the_o see_v of_o 1_o rome_n have_v authority_n by_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n to_o govern_v all_o particular_a church_n next_o under_o christ._n r._n b._n i_o be_o never_o the_o near_o know_v the_o pope_n by_o this_o till_o i_o know_v how_o st._n peter_n successor_n may_v be_v know_v to_o i_o q._n 1._o what_o personal_a qualification_n be_v necessary_a ad_fw-la esse_fw-la w._n j._n such_o as_o be_v necessary_a ad_fw-la esse_fw-la of_o other_o bishop_n which_o i_o suppose_v you_o know_v r._n b._n if_o so_o than_o all_o those_o be_v no_o pope_n that_o be_v heretic_n or_o deny_v essential_a point_n of_o faith_n w._n j._n it_o be_v true_a they_o be_v no_o pope_n while_o
may_v elect_v a_o schoolmaster_n pope_n and_o any_o man_n may_v be_v pope_n or_o a_o hundred_o may_v be_v pope_n but_o if_o not_o than_o it_o must_v be_v know_v who_o it_o be_v that_o have_v the_o power_n of_o election_n and_o that_o it_o be_v do_v by_o they_o the_o people_n of_o barnet_n or_o brainford_n have_v no_o authority_n to_o elect_v a_o lord_n mayor_n of_o london_n nor_o will_v one_o of_o their_o choice_n be_v any_o better_a than_o a_o playhouse_n lord._n our_o question_n be_v who_o must_v choose_v the_o governor_n of_o all_o the_o world_n in_o reason_n all_o the_o world_n shall_v meet_v by_o themselves_o or_o their_o just_a delegate_n to_o choose_v he_o but_o the_o man_n that_o claim_v this_o divine_a sovereignty_n have_v be_v sometime_o choose_v at_o rome_n by_o a_o meeting_n of_o lay-citizen_n and_o sometime_o by_o neighbour-bishop_n and_o sometime_o at_o the_o best_a by_o citizen_n and_o presbyter_n together_o bishop_n approve_v it_o and_o sometime_o by_o the_o emperor_n of_o rome_n of_o constantinople_n or_o of_o germany_n and_o sometime_o by_o a_o sort_n of_o thing_n call_v cardinal_n now_o if_o none_o of_o these_o have_v more_o right_a to_o choose_v he_o than_o the_o rest_n then_o either_o any_o body_n have_v right_a that_o can_v carry_v it_o out_o and_o get_v possession_n or_o else_o no_o body_n have_v right_a or_o none_o can_v tell_v who_o have_v it_o according_o for_o above_o forty_o year_n together_o the_o emperor_n and_o his_o party_n choose_v one_o pope_n and_o the_o king_n of_o france_n and_o his_o party_n choose_v another_o one_o reign_v at_o rome_n and_o another_o at_o avignion_n in_o france_n part_v of_o europe_n choose_v or_o own_a one_o and_o part_v another_o and_o at_o once_o say_v wernerus_n there_o be_v six_o alive_a that_o be_v then_o pope_n or_o have_v be_v pope_n of_o who_o one_o honest_a than_o the_o rest_n because_o he_o can_v not_o read_v himself_o choose_v another_o pope_n to_o be_v his_o partner_n to_o read_v the_o mass_n which_o he_o can_v not_o do_v and_o to_o help_v he_o in_o the_o rest_n here_o in_o the_o answer_n of_o w._n j._n 1._o he_o dare_v not_o tell_v we_o who_o have_v the_o power_n of_o election_n 2._o but_o he_o say_v it_o must_v be_v those_o that_o be_v fit_a for_o the_o charge_n if_o i_o shall_v ask_v who_o must_v choose_v the_o lord_n mayor_n of_o london_n and_o you_o shall_v so_o answer_v i_o those_o that_o be_v fit_a for_o the_o charge_n will_v not_o any_o sensible_a reader_n judge_v by_o your_o answer_n that_o you_o be_v unfit_a for_o a_o honest_a disputation_n 3._o he_o say_v that_o the_o elector_n must_v be_v so_o esteem_v fit_a for_o the_o charge_n by_o those_o to_o who_o it_o do_v belong_v to_o who_o what_o do_v belong_v why_o to_o esteem_v the_o elector_n fit_a but_o how_o shall_v a_o man_n know_v to_o who_o it_o do_v belong_v to_o judge_n who_o be_v fit_a to_o be_v a_o elector_n do_v it_o belong_v to_o the_o world_n or_o to_o rome_n to_o the_o people_n presbyter_n bishop_n emperor_n or_o cardinal_n here_o we_o have_v more_o difficulty_n than_o we_o think_v of_o we_o must_v know_v who_o be_v fit_a to_o be_v pope_n and_o who_o be_v fit_a to_o elect_v he_o and_o to_o who_o it_o belong_v to_o judge_n who_o be_v fit_a to_o be_v elector_n that_o be_v to_o elect_v elector_n and_o when_o shall_v we_o come_v to_o know_v all_o this_o if_o he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v the_o people_n that_o must_v choose_v the_o chooser_n what_o people_n be_v they_o they_o of_o rome_n or_o they_o of_o all_o italy_n or_o they_o of_o germany_n or_o of_o france_n or_o of_o all_o europe_n or_o of_o all_o the_o world_n 3._o he_o say_v that_o the_o chooser_n must_v be_v such_o as_o by_o custom_n be_v esteem_v fit_a by_o these_o but_o what_o custom_n do_v the_o man_n mean_v when_o there_o have_v be_v four_o or_o five_o way_n or_o sort_n of_o election_n have_v not_o every_o one_o of_o they_o a_o beginning_n and_o at_o their_o beginning_n can_v they_o plead_v custom_n o_o that_o your_o sword_n be_v no_o strong_a than_o your_o reason_n 4._o yea_o he_o say_v it_o must_v be_v approve_v custom_n but_o not_o a_o word_n who_o must_v be_v the_o approver_n of_o all_o these_o new_a custom_n 5._o and_o when_o all_o be_v do_v no_o more_o be_v needful_a but_o that_o the_o unknown_a person_n to_o who_o it_o belong_v do_v esteem_v the_o elector_n fit_a and_o so_o be_v they_o fit_a or_o unfit_a their_o estimation_n carry_v it_o 6._o but_o yet_o the_o hard_a part_n remain_v the_o church_n must_v be_v satisfy_v with_o the_o election_n but_o 1._o either_o the_o election_n be_v valid_a or_o invalid_a before_o if_o valid_a will_v the_o church_n dissatisfaction_n invalidate_v it_o if_o invalid_a will_v the_o church_n satisfaction_n make_v it_o valid_a or_o make_v he_o pope_n that_o be_v none_o before_o who_o will_v have_v think_v that_o a_o pope_n have_v be_v a_o wight_n so_o utter_o unintelligible_a 2._o and_o what_o way_n must_v the_o church_n satisfaction_n be_v notify_v to_o i_o be_v it_o by_o some_o note_n of_o approbation_n or_o by_o silence_n it_o be_v in_o vain_a for_o man_n to_o contradict_v that_o have_v no_o power_n but_o what_o if_o i_o believe_v in_o my_o conscience_n that_o most_o of_o the_o church_n be_v unsatisfied_a in_o the_o election_n must_v i_o take_v that_o man_n to_o be_v no_o pope_n then_o i_o be_o necessitate_v to_o believe_v that_o when_o whore_n and_o murderer_n and_o such_o like_a bring_v in_o the_o fifty_o that_o baronius_n and_o genebrard_n call_v apostatical_a etc._n etc._n there_o be_v a_o interruption_n of_o the_o succession_n by_o the_o dissatisfaction_n of_o the_o church_n good_a sir_n be_v the_o church_n satisfy_v with_o such_o man_n be_v it_o satisfy_v with_o those_o that_o the_o foresay_a council_n condemn_v as_o heretical_a wicked_a and_o one_o of_o they_o a_o devil_n incarnate_a do_v those_o council_n signify_v no_o dissatisfaction_n of_o the_o church_n 3._o and_o must_v i_o suspend_v my_o reception_n of_o the_o pope_n till_o the_o abassine_n armenian_n greek_n yea_o or_o mexican_n and_o the_o antipode_n signify_v their_o satisfaction_n 4._o but_o what_o be_v the_o church_n that_o must_v be_v satisfy_v when_o half_a europe_n be_v for_o one_o and_o the_o rest_n for_o another_o for_o forty_o year_n and_o more_o with_o which_o of_o they_o be_v the_o church_n satisfy_v be_v france_n or_o germany_n the_o church_n 5._o last_o by_o this_o we_o be_v acquit_v from_o acknowledge_v your_o pope_n at_o all_o while_o we_o know_v that_o three_o four_o part_n or_o at_o least_o two_o three_o part_n of_o christ_n church_n on_o earth_n be_v unsatisfied_a with_o your_o pope_n and_o papacy_n itself_o to_o all_o this_o he_o answer_v w._n j._n 1._o tour_n exception_n be_v fallacy_n à_fw-la sensu_fw-la conjuncto_fw-la ad_fw-la sensum_fw-la divisum_fw-la r._n b._n see_v reader_n what_o the_o papacy_n be_v come_v to_o if_o it_o have_v not_o the_o sword_n or_o ignorance_n to_o uphold_v it_o when_o he_o put_v together_o so_o many_o thing_n as_o necessary_a ad_fw-la esse_fw-la to_o the_o election_n of_o a_o pope_n and_o yet_o make_v nothing_o but_o a_o mere_a name_n to_o deceive_v the_o ignorant_a of_o any_o one_o of_o they_o be_v it_o fallacious_a of_o i_o to_o expect_v that_o all_o those_o thing_n be_v find_v in_o the_o election_n or_o be_v it_o not_o fallacious_a in_o he_o that_o can_v show_v we_o never_o a_o one_o of_o they_o next_o w._n i._o say_v if_o the_o church_n do_v real_o acquiesce_v in_o such_o a_o elect_a person_n as_o pope_n it_o be_v satisfy_v according_a to_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o election_n though_o not_o in_o the_o circumstance_n r._n b._n 1._o reader_n be_v this_o any_o answer_n to_o any_o of_o the_o foresay_a objection_n what_o satisfaction_n what_o church_n when_o part_n of_o the_o church_n be_v divide_v and_o the_o great_a part_n abhor_v they_o all_o and_o be_v he_o pope_n or_o no_o before_o this_o acquiesce_n if_o so_o what_o make_v he_o so_o and_o 2._o what_o do_v he_o but_o cheat_v we_o by_o his_o distinction_n of_o the_o substance_n and_o circumstance_n of_o election_n do_v he_o not_o obstinate_o but_o necessary_o refuse_v to_o tell_v what_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o election_n have_v those_o that_o be_v bring_v in_o by_o whore_n poison_n and_o murder_n the_o substance_n have_v those_o that_o be_v choose_v by_o people_n presbyter_n bishop_n emperor_n and_o cardinal_n all_o the_o substance_n if_o so_o why_o may_v not_o twenty_o have_v the_o substance_n at_o once_o or_o four_o or_o five_o at_o lest_o what_o be_v it_o that_o be_v the_o substance_n alas_o we_o ask_v in_o vain_a that_o which_o can_v be_v tell_v we_o next_o he_o say_v if_o the_o church_n never_o accept_v they_o as_o
christ_n have_v make_v we_o a_o king_n or_o bishop_n of_o all_o the_o world_n he_o will_v have_v tell_v we_o who_o must_v choose_v he_o to_o save_v the_o man_n at_o the_o antipode_n their_o journey_n 2._o but_o why_o pretend_v you_o then_o the_o people_n consent_n when_o you_o plead_v it_o unnecessary_a in_o poland_n that_o their_o diet_n choose_v their_o king_n be_v from_o a_o know_a reason_n it_o be_v the_o constitution_n of_o their_o kingdom_n which_o the_o people_n agree_v to_o and_o choose_v many_o of_o the_o chooser_n but_o when_o do_v the_o universal_a church_n constitute_v your_o cardinal_n to_o be_v the_o elector_n or_o which_o of_o the_o cardinal_n be_v choose_v by_o the_o universal_a church_n or_o any_o other_o than_o the_o pope_n himself_o god_n make_v bishopric_n like_o corporation_n where_o all_o may_v choose_v the_o mayor_n who_o make_v they_o like_o great_a kingdom_n or_o set_v one_o over_o all_o the_o world_n where_o the_o people_n can_v choose_v nor_o god_n make_v any_o chooser_n be_v the_o question_n r._n b._n 4._o according_a to_o this_o rule_n your_o succession_n have_v be_v frequent_o interrupt_v when_o against_o the_o will_n of_o general_n council_n and_o of_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o christian_n your_o pope_n have_v keep_v the_o seat_n 12._o by_o force_n w._n j._n these_o be_v generality_n what_o pope_n what_o council_n in_o particular_a name_n and_o prove_v if_o you_o will_v he_o answer_v r._n b._n what_o disgraceful_a ignorance_n be_v you_o force_v to_o pretend_v what_o need_v i_o go_v over_o your_o schism_n what_o need_v i_o name_v any_o more_o than_o eugenius_n the_o four_o depose_v by_o a_o great_a general_n council_n and_o two_o or_o three_o part_n of_o the_o church_n disow_v your_o pope_n at_o this_o day_n r._n b._n i_o tell_v he_o how_o his_o instance_n even_o about_o civil_a power_n fail_v see_v the_o consent_n of_o a_o people_n 13._o pre-engaged_n to_o their_o prince_n give_v not_o right_a to_o a_o usurper_n w._n j._n the_o people_n can_v be_v suppose_v to_o consent_v free_o and_o lawful_o to_o a_o usurper_n etc._n etc._n r._n b._n lawful_o indeed_o they_o can_v and_o that_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n that_o i_o affirm_v you_o confute_v i_o by_o grant_v what_o i_o say_v when_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v a_o lawful_a election_n to_o be_v bishop_n of_o all_o the_o world_n we_o will_v obey_v he_o and_o so_o we_o will_v any_o prelate_n or_o priest_n that_o have_v a_o know_v lawful_a election_n r._n b._n will_v any_o diocese_n suffice_v ad_fw-la esse_fw-la what_o if_o it_o be_v but_o in_o particulor_n assembly_n w._n j._n it_o must_v be_v more_o than_o a_o parish_n or_o than_o one_o single_a congregation_n which_o have_v not_o different_a inferior_a 14._o pastor_n and_o one_o who_o be_v their_o superior_a etc._n etc._n r._n b._n 1._o how_o ambiguous_o and_o fraudulent_o do_v you_o answer_v no_o man_n can_v tell_v by_o this_o whether_o you_o unbishop_n all_o that_o have_v but_o one_o parish_n or_o congregation_n or_o only_o all_o that_o have_v not_o presbyter_n under_o they_o which_o ever_o you_o mean_v it_o be_v notorious_o false_a and_o a_o nullify_n of_o the_o ancient_a episcopacy_n ignatim_o tell_v you_o that_o in_o hi●…_n day_n one_o church_n be_v know_v by_o one_o altar_n and_o one_o bishop_n with_o the_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n and_o though_o i_o think_v not_o as_o dr._n hamond_n that_o all_o the_o first_o bishop_n in_o scripture-time_n be_v settle_v as_o the_o sole_a pastor_n of_o single_a congregation_n without_o any_o presbyter_n under_o they_o yet_o when_o you_o consider_v with_o who_o he_o agree_v in_o this_o viz._n dionysius_n petavius_n and_o what_o st._n clara_n say_v for_o it_o father_v it_o on_o scotus_n we_o think_v you_o shall_v not_o so_o far_o differ_v from_o your_o own_o doctor_n as_o to_o deny_v all_o those_o to_o be_v true_a bishop_n of_o the_o scrip●…re-times_n who_o they_o think_v be_v the_o only_a bishop_n you_o have_v a_o custom_n of_o call_v the_o apostle_n bishop_n even_o peter_n bishop_n of_o antioch_n and_o rome_n do_v not_o those_o first_o bishop_n than_o make_v all_o the_o presbyter_n that_o be_v under_o they_o qu._n whether_o they_o be_v no_o bishop_n till_o they_o have_v make_v those_o presbyter_n if_o no_o than_o those_o first_o presbyter_n have_v not_o episcopal_a ordination_n if_o yea_o then_o habetur_fw-la quaesitum_fw-la the_o truth_n be_v all_o the_o ancient_a bishop_n be_v the_o pastor_n of_o single_a church_n not_o near_o so_o big_a as_o many_o of_o our_o parish_n i_o have_v elsewhere_o prove_v this_o at_o large_a i_o instance_a to_o he_o only_o in_o gregory_n neoc●…sariensis_n who_o be_v bishop_n only_o of_o seventeen_o soul_n when_o he_o come_v thither_o first_o he_o answer_v w._n j._n how_o know_v you_o that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o in_o the_o country_n adjacent_a 2._o know_v you_o not_o that_o he_o be_v send_v to_o multiply_v christian_n and_o make_v himself_o a_o competent_a diocese_n r._n b._n i_o know_v the_o first_o by_o the_o consent_n of_o history_n that_o tell_v we_o of_o the_o seventeen_o in_o the_o city_n over_o who_o he_o be_v set_v and_o speak_v of_o no_o more_o in_o such_o circumstance_n as_o will_v have_v occasion_v it_o 2._o and_o i_o believe_v your_o second_o but_o do_v not_o you_o see_v that_o you_o desert_n your_o cause_n and_o contradict_v yourself_o 1._o speak_v out_o be_v he_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o infidel_n be_v they_o his_o church_n or_o be_v he_o only_o to_o convert_v and_o gather_v they_o to_o the_o church_n 2._o be_v he_o not_o a_o bishop_n there_o before_o he_o have_v convert_v any_o one_o to_o those_o seventeen_o alone_a you_o dare_v deny_v none_o of_o this_o therefore_o he_o be_v a_o bishop_n before_o he_o have_v more_o congregation_n than_o one_o and_o before_o he_o have_v any_o presbyter_n to_o govern_v and_o here_o you_o may_v see_v how_o the_o change_v that_o pope_n and_o their_o prelate_n have_v make_v in_o the_o church_n constrain_v they_o to_o defend_v they_o by_o subvert_v their_o own_o foundation_n for_o if_o those_o be_v no_o bishop_n who_o have_v but_o one_o congregation_n yea_o and_o those_o that_o have_v no_o subject-presbyter_n than_o the_o first_o age_n if_o not_o also_o the_o second_o except_o in_o rome_n and_o alexandria_n have_v no_o true_a bishop_n or_o at_o least_o the_o founder_n be_v not_o such_o and_o their_o episcopacy_n as_o they_o describe_v it_o have_v no_o succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n truth_n and_o error_n will_v never_o make_v a_o close_a coalition_n chap._n v._o q._n what_o mean_v you_o by_o tradition_n w._n i._n i_o understand_v by_o tradition_n the_o visible_a delivery_n from_o hand_n to_o hand_n in_o all_o case_n of_o the_o reveal_v 1●…_n will_n of_o god_n either_o write_v or_o unwritten_a r._n b._n i_o suppose_v by_o visible_a from_o hand_n to_o hand_n you_o mean_v principal_o of_o the_o unwritten_a audible_a from_o ear_n to_o ear_n by_o speech_n but_o all_o the_o doubt_n be_v by_o who_o it_o must_v be_v deliver_v by_o the_o pastor_n or_o people_n or_o both_o by_o the_o pope_n or_o council_n or_o bishop_n disjunct_n by_o the_o major_a part_n of_o the_o church_n bishop_n or_o presbyter_n or_o by_o how_o many_o w._n j._n by_o such_o and_o so_o many_o proportionable_o as_o suffice_v in_o a_o kingdom_n to_o certify_v the_o people_n which_o be_v the_o ancient_a universal_a receive_v custom_n in_o that_o kingdom_n which_o be_v to_o be_v moral_o consider_v r._n b._n o_o wary_a disputant_n that_o take_v heed_n lest_o you_o shall_v answer_v while_o you_o seem_v to_o answer_v reader_n a_o kingdom_n be_v not_o so_o big_a as_o all_o the_o world_n the_o custom_n of_o a_o kingdom_n may_v be_v know_v by_o the_o constant_a consent_n of_o the_o people_n of_o that_o kingdom_n and_o if_o they_o differ_v about_o it_o record_n and_o lawbook_n decide_v it_o expository_o and_o judge_n by_o the_o decision_n of_o particular_a man_n case_n by_o such_o rule_n but_o can_v custom_n be_v know_v as_o well_o over_o all_o the_o world_n yea_o and_o can_v matter_n of_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n be_v as_o easy_o know_v as_o practise_v custom_n can_v we_o know_v as_o easy_o what_o be_v the_o tradition_n of_o abassia_n armenia_n syria_n egypt_n etc._n etc._n as_o of_o england_n can_v they_o of_o abassia_n tell_v what_o be_v the_o true_a tradition_n of_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n that_o have_v tradition_n in_o their_o own_o country_n so_o different_a from_o we_o they_o have_v many_o book_n as_o sacred_a among_o they_o by_o tradition_n which_o we_o receive_v not_o they_o have_v annual_a baptism_n and_o other_o ceremony_n by_o tradition_n which_o we_o account_v to_o be_v unlawful_a here_o i_o tell_v w._n i._n 1._o how_o certain_o tradition_n be_v against_o they_o when_o most_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n
which_o we_o charge_v they_o with_o in_o europe_n and_o yet_o the_o papist_n so_o charge_v they_o still_o that_o they_o may_v seem_v to_o have_v reason_n for_o condemn_v they_o fear_v that_o their_o non-subjection_n to_o the_o pope_n will_v not_o seem_v enough_o with_o impartial_a man_n and_o as_o to_o the_o great_a confidence_n that_o they_o seem_v to_o place_v in_o their_o succession_n to_o st._n peter_n 6._o and_o christ_n word_n to_o he_o on_o this_o rock_n i_o will_v build_v my_o church_n and_o to_o thou_o i_o give_v the_o key_n etc._n etc._n and_o feed_v my_o sheep_n i_o have_v oft_o answer_v it_o more_o full_o than_o be_v fit_a again_o to_o recite_v but_o these_o few_o hint_n i_o will_v commend_v to_o the_o reader_n 1._o that_o we_o affirm_v that_o peter_n be_v among_o they_o as_o a_o foreman_n of_o a_o jury_n and_o no_o more_o and_o so_o christ_n speak_v to_o the_o rest_n in_o speak_v to_o he_o and_o the_o same_o power_n be_v give_v to_o the_o rest_n the_o church_n be_v say_v to_o be_v build_v on_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o head_n cornerstone_n is_n not_o this_o as_o much_o as_o be_v say_v of_o st._n peter_n christ_n give_v they_o all_o the_o power_n of_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o remit_v and_o retain_v sin_n bind_v and_o lose_v which_o be_v the_o key_n which_o he_o give_v to_o peter_n and_o they_o be_v all_o send_v forth_o to_o feed_v christ_n sheep_n now_o the_o father_n give_v as_o high_a title_n oft_o to_o other_o as_o to_o the_o pope_n yea_o and_o to_o peter_n see_v what_o i_o have_v cite_v in_o my_o key_n for_o catholic_n pag._n 175._o 176._o and_o what_o gataker_n have_v cite_v out_o of_o dionysius_n tertullian_n basil_n jerome_n augustine_n theodoret_n gildas_n nicephorus_n etc._n etc._n cin._n 395._o 396._o 2._o peter_n never_o exercise_v any_o authority_n over_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n he_o call_v they_o not_o govern_v they_o not_o there_o be_v mention_n of_o paul_n reprove_v he_o gal._n 2._o but_o none_o of_o his_o reprove_v they_o schism_n be_v among_o they_o and_o great_o lament_v they_o be_v never_o direct_v to_o unite_v in_o peter_n as_o the_o way_n to_o concord_n nor_o to_o have_v recourse_n to_o he_o to_o end_v they_o nay_o when_o the_o overvaluers_a of_o peter_n make_v one_o party_n in_o the_o schism_n among_o the_o corinthian_n paul_n seek_v to_o take_v they_o off_o that_o way_n and_o set_v peter_n in_o the_o same_o rank_n with_o himself_o and_o apollo_n as_o minister_n only_o by_o who_o they_o believe_v call_v they_o carnal_a for_o say_v i_o be_o of_o cephas_n never_o call_v they_o to_o unite_v in_o he_o as_o the_o head_n of_o all_o and_o have_v this_o be_v necessary_a what_o have_v this_o be_v but_o to_o betray_v the_o church_n 3._o the_o apostle_n be_v never_o proper_o bishop_n but_o of_o a_o high_a rank_n bishop_n be_v the_o fix_a overseer_n of_o particular_a church_n and_o no_o one_o have_v many_o but_o apostle_n only_o plant_v they_o and_o govern_v they_o for_o their_o confirmation_n and_o so_o pass_v on_o from_o one_o to_o another_o and_o have_v care_n of_o many_o such_o at_o once_o if_o any_o one_o church_n may_v pretend_v superiority_n by_o virtue_n of_o succession_n it_o will_v be_v jerusalem_n and_o next_o that_o ephesus_n where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o john_n the_o belove_a disciple_n be_v as_o bishop_n and_o which_o have_v continue_v to_o this_o day_n 4._o the_o apostle_n as_o such_o have_v no_o successor_n nor_o as_o bishop_n in_o any_o distinct_a seat_n the_o same_o christ_n that_o call_v peter_n call_v the_o rest_n and_o call_v especial_o the_o belove_a disciple_n to_o who_o on_o the_o cross_n he_o commend_v his_o mother_n when_o peter_n have_v deny_v he_o and_o he_o promise_v to_o be_v with_o they_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n but_o no_o bishop_n on_o earth_n ever_o pretend_v to_o superiority_n over_o any_o other_o church_n as_o the_o successor_n of_o the_o other_o eleven_o apostle_n where_o be_v those_o seat_n or_o where_o ever_o be_v they_o if_o the_o apostle_n successor_n must_v rule_v the_o church_n as_o such_o tell_v we_o which_o be_v the_o other_o eleven_o and_o which_o be_v their_o diocese_n and_o of_o what_o extent_n nay_o it_o be_v stone_n considerable_a that_o even_o in_o the_o time_n of_o domination_n there_o be_v but_o five_o patriarchates_n ever_o set_v up_o and_o not_o twelve_o and_o not_o one_o of_o those_o claim_v power_n by_o virtue_n of_o succession_n from_o any_o apostle_n constantinople_n never_o pretend_v to_o it_o alexandria_n claim_v the_o honour_n of_o succession_n only_o from_o st._n mark_n who_o be_v no_o apostle_n and_o jerusalem_n from_o james_n who_o dr._n hammond_n labour_v to_o prove_v to_o have_v be_v none_o of_o the_o apostle_n but_o a_o kinsman_n of_o jesus_n only_a antioch_n and_o rome_n claim_v succession_n from_o peter_n and_o antioch_n as_o his_o first_o seat_n but_o they_o do_v on_o that_o single_a account_n claim_v power_n then_o over_o other_o church_n and_o see_v the_o church_n be_v build_v on_o the_o foundation_n of_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n and_o that_o all_o the_o apostle_n 1_o cor._n 12._o be_v mention_v equal_o as_o the_o noble_a foundation_n member_n or_o pillar_n and_o the_o people_n chide_v sharp_o by_o paul_n for_o make_v cephas_n a_o head_n what_o reason_n have_v we_o to_o believe_v that_o peter_n only_o have_v perpetual_a successor_n fix_v to_o a_o certain_a city_n and_o that_o no_o other_o of_o all_o the_o apostle_n have_v any_o such_o what_o word_n of_o god_n will_v prove_v that_o peter_n have_v leave_v his_o power_n at_o rome_n and_o no_o other_o apostle_n no_o not_o one_o have_v leave_v they_o to_o any_o place_n or_o person_n on_o earth_n yea_o and_o that_o he_o leave_v it_o more_o to_o rome_n than_o to_o antioch_n when_o antioch_n claim_v the_o first_o succession_n from_o he_o and_o rome_n but_o the_o second_o and_o when_o nilus_n and_o other_o have_v say_v so_o much_o to_o make_v it_o probable_a that_o peter_n never_o be_v at_o rome_n and_o when_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o paul_n be_v there_o and_o those_o old_a father_n that_o from_o some_o word_n of_o one_o of_o eusebius_n his_o doubtful_a author_n do_v say_v that_o peter_n be_v at_o rome_n and_o bishop_n there_o do_v also_o say_v that_o it_o be_v the_o episcopal_a seat_n of_o paul_n and_o when_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o no_o apostle_n be_v anywhere_o a_o bishop_n formaliter_fw-la but_o only_a eminenter_fw-la as_o be_v not_o fix_v nor_o fix_v their_o power_n to_o any_o seat_n and_o dr._n hammond_n give_v very_o considerable_a conjecture_n that_o if_o peter_n and_o paul_n be_v both_o at_o rome_n they_o have_v divers_a church_n there_o paul_n be_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o uncircumcision_n and_o peter_n of_o the_o circumcision_n only_o from_o whence_o we_o may_v see_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o his_o apostle_n judge_v that_o there_o may_v be_v more_o church_n and_o bishop_n in_o one_o city_n than_o one_o much_o more_o over_o a_o thousand_o parish_n though_o as_o the_o contrary_a spirit_n prevail_v the_o contrary_a interest_n and_o opinion_n prevail_v with_o it_o these_o thing_n premise_v the_o reader_n must_v know_v that_o the_o state_n of_o the_o controversy_n between_o 7._o mr._n terret_n alias_o mr._n johnson_n and_o i_o be_v this_o find_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o possession_n of_o abundance_n of_o error_n and_o vanity_n he_o will_v not_o only_o persuade_v we_o that_o they_o be_v of_o god_n and_o have_v ever_o be_v the_o same_o because_o it_o be_v so_o with_o they_o now_o but_o also_o conclude_v that_o these_o carbuncle_n be_v essential_a to_o christianity_n and_o the_o church_n and_o that_o we_o can_v prove_v that_o we_o be_v a_o church_n and_o christian_n unless_o we_o prove_v that_o we_o have_v have_v from_o the_o apostle_n a_o continue_a succession_n of_o their_o error_n as_o if_o a_o man_n can_v not_o prove_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o man_n unless_o all_o his_o ancestor_n from_o adam_n have_v the_o french-pox_n or_o the_o leprosy_n on_o the_o contrary_n i_o maintain_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v his_o body_n be_v essentiate_v by_o true_a consent_n to_o the_o baptismal_a covenant_n which_o be_v our_o christen_n and_o integrate_v by_o all_o the_o additional_a degree_n that_o this_o covenant_n be_v expound_v in_o the_o creed_n lord_n prayer_n and_o christian_a decalogue_n the_o lord_n supper_n be_v but_o the_o same_o covenant_n celebrate_v by_o other_o sign_n not_o for_o essence_n but_o confirmation_n that_o all_o that_o consent_n to_o the_o celebrate_v baptismal_a covenant_n hearty_o be_v member_n of_o the_o invisible_a church_n and_o all_o that_o profess_v consent_n in_o sincerity_n or_o hypocrisy_n be_v visible_a member_n
coram_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la that_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n have_v no_o other_o head_n than_o christ_n himself_o no_o vicarious_a universal_a head_n pope_n nor_o council_n that_o the_o protestant_n profess_v themselves_o member_n of_o no_o other_o universal_a church_n but_o that_o of_o which_o christ_n only_o be_v the_o head_n and_o all_o christian_n at_o least_o not_o cast_v out_o be_v member_n that_o this_o christian_a church_n have_v be_v visible_a to_o god_n by_o real_a consent_n and_o visible_a to_o man_n by_o profess_a consent_n from_o the_o first_o be_v of_o it_o to_o this_o day_n and_o when_o they_o ask_v we_o where_o be_v your_o church_n before_o luther_n we_o say_v where_o there_o be_v christian_n before_o luther_n our_o religion_n be_v nothing_o but_o simple_a christianity_n we_o be_v o●…_n no_o catholic_n church_n but_o the_o universality_n of_o christian_n we_o know_v no_o other_o but_o lament_v that_o the_o pride_n of_o the_o clergy_n grow_v up_o from_o parochial_a to_o diocesan_n and_o from_o diocesan_n to_o metropolitical_n and_o patriarchal_a and_o thence_o to_o papal_a have_v invent_v any_o other_o and_o that_o the_o serpent_n that_o tempt_v eve_n have_v draw_v they_o from_o the_o christian_a simplicity_n they_o deny_v not_o the_o successive_a visibility_n of_o christianity_n and_o the_o christian_a church_n we_o desire_v no_o more_o we_o own_v we_o know_v no_o other_o religion_n and_o no_o other_o church_n but_o the_o roman_a artifice_n here_o come_v in_o and_o when_o their_o humane_a universal_a head_n have_v make_v the_o grand_a schism_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n hence_o they_o have_v learn_v to_o 8._o make_v christian_n of_o no_o christian_n and_o no_o christian_n of_o christian_n as_o pride_n and_o ignorance_n serve_v this_o usurp_a interest_n please_v their_o doctor_n be_v not_o agree_v whether_o any_o more_o be_v necessary_a explicit_o to_o be_v believe_v to_o salvation_n than_o that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n and_o that_o our_o work_n shall_v be_v reward_v without_o believe_v a_o word_n of_o christ_n or_o the_o gospel_n and_o whether_o they_o that_o believe_v not_o in_o christ_n be_v christian_n or_o whether_o be_v no_o christian_n yet_o they_o be_v member_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n and_o the_o great_a part_n be_v here_o on_o the_o wide_a latitudinarian_a side_n as_o you_o may_v see_v in_o fr._n s._n clara_n problem_n deus_fw-la nat._n grat._n and_o in_o the_o word_n of_o this_o w._n i._n before_o answer_v and_o yet_o these_o charitable_a man_n conclude_v that_o two_o or_o three_o part_n of_o the_o true_a christian_a world_n abassine_n copty_v syrian_n jacobite_n georgian_n armenian_n greek_n moscovite_n protestant_n be_v all_o out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n though_o their_o own_o friar_n that_o have_v live_v among_o some_o of_o they_o in_o the_o east_n profess_v that_o they_o be_v no_o heretic_n and_o be_v better_a man_n than_o the_o papist_n be_v and_o none_o worse_o of_o life_n than_o the_o roman_a party_n and_o whence_o be_v this_o strange_a difference_n why_o it_o be_v because_o that_o these_o be_v none_o of_o they_o subject_n to_o the_o pope_n which_o it_o be_v suppose_v that_o those_o be_v that_o believe_v only_o that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n and_o a_o reward_n but_o how_o be_v this_o their_o only_a explicit_a faith_n if_o they_o must_v also_o believe_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o vice-christ_n and_o some_o of_o they_o tell_v you_o further_o that_o he_o that_o shall_v so_o far_o believe_v his_o ghostly_a father_n the_o priest_n sup_n as_o to_o hold_v that_o he_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o love_n god_n because_o the_o priest_n tell_v he_o so_o be_v not_o only_o excusable_a but_o he_o merit_v by_o it_o so_o much_o more_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v it_o to_o love_v the_o priest_n than_o to_o love_v god_n and_o yet_o after_o all_o this_o their_o own_o leader_n confess_v that_o it_o be_v no_o article_n of_o their_o faith_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v peter_n successor_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o by_o revelation_n that_o the_o church-governor_n 9_o must_v be_v know_v as_o i_o have_v show_v out_o of_o ri._n smyth_n bishop_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o of_o england_n and_o in_o the_o fore-confuted_n write_n of_o w._n i_o the_o thing_n that_o i_o maintain_v be_v i._o that_o the_o protestant_n religion_n and_o church_n be_v only_o the_o christian_n as_o such_o have_v a_o uninterrupted_a succession_n as_o such_o which_o the_o papist_n 10._o deny_v not_o ii_o that_o the_o papal_a church_n as_o such_o can_v prove_v its_o constant_a visibility_n and_o succession_n nay_o though_o it_o be_v their_o part_n to_o prove_v it_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o prove_v 1._o that_o it_o be_v a_o novelty_n 2._o that_o it_o have_v be_v often_o and_o notorious_o interrupt_v and_o their_o papacy_n have_v not_o have_v any_o continue_a succession_n of_o man_n true_o pope_n by_o their_o own_o law_n and_o rule_n and_o in_o their_o own_o account_n chap._n i._n the_o confutation_n of_o w._n j_n reply_n the_o first_o regardable_a passage_n in_o w._n i_n reply_n be_v p._n 53_o 54._o where_o he_o maintain_v that_o whatsoever_o have_v be_v ever_o in_o the_o church_n by_o christ_n institution_n be_v essential_a to_o the_o 1_o church_n and_o nothing_o mere_o integral_v or_o accident_n because_o i_o have_v omit_v the_o word_n ever_o in_o the_o confutation_n he_o take_v that_o as_o the_o insufficiency_n of_o all_o that_o i_o say_v against_o he_o and_o challenge_v i_o still_o to_o give_v a_o instance_n of_o any_o institution_n not_o essential_a to_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n that_o have_v be_v ever_o in_o it_o but_o reader_n be_v perpetuity_n any_o proof_n of_o a_o essential_a he_o be_v force_v to_o confess_v that_o as_o other_o society_n so_o the_o church_n have_v accident_n but_o he_o faith_n no_o accident_n institute_v have_v be_v 2._o ever_o in_o it_o it_o may_v be_v we_o shall_v have_v a_o quibble_n here_o upon_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n ever_o whether_o it_o be_v 3_o from_o everlasting_a or_o from_o the_o creation_n or_o before_o christ_n incarnation_n or_o before_o his_o resurrection_n or_o the_o form_n of_o his_o church_n by_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o apostle_n but_o in_o consistency_n with_o his_o own_o cause_n which_o be_v that_o the_o papacy_n have_v be_v ever_o in_o the_o church_n he_o must_v take_v up_o with_o this_o last_o sense_n well_o let_v we_o see_v what_o work_n these_o man_n make_v and_o how_o they_o be_v take_v in_o the_o trap_n that_o they_o lie_v for_o other_o but_o first_o he_o shall_v have_v some_o confute_v instance_n 4._o 1._o every_o word_n of_o christ_n own_o doctrine_n and_o speech_n record_v in_o the_o gospel_n have_v be_v ever_o in_o the_o church_n and_o institute_v by_o christ_n but_o every_o word_n of_o christ_n own_o doctrine_n and_o speech_n record_v in_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o essential_a to_o the_o church_n therefore_o every_o thing_n institute_v by_o christ_n that_o have_v be_v ever_o in_o the_o church_n be_v not_o essential_a to_o it_o if_o you_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o all_o write_v till_o after_o some_o year_n it_o be_v yet_o all_o in_o the_o church_n even_o in_o the_o mind_n of_o they_o that_o write_v it_o and_o the_o other_o apostle_n and_o in_o their_o preach_n as_o be_o like_a if_o you_o say_v that_o all_o this_o be_v essential_a alas_o then_o if_o false_a copy_n have_v lose_v we_o a_o word_n the_o church_n be_v lose_v and_o those_o church_n that_o receive_v not_o some_o word_n be_v unchurch_v that_o christ_n suffer_v under_o pontius_n pilate_n have_v be_v ever_o in_o the_o church_n creed_n and_o yet_o the_o name_n of_o pontius_n pilate_n be_v not_o essential_a to_o christianity_n 2._o the_o administer_a the_o lord_n supper_n in_o both_o kind_n bread_n and_o wine_n have_v be_v ever_o in_o the_o church_n and_o of_o christ_n own_o institution_n be_v this_o essential_a to_o the_o church_n perhaps_o some_o will_v have_v the_o impudence_n to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o now_o in_o it_o because_o the_o pope_n have_v cast_v it_o out_o but_o it_o be_v now_o in_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n and_o we_o may_v as_o well_o say_v the_o papacy_n be_v not_o now_o in_o because_o other_o church_n do_v reject_v it_o 3._o prayer_n in_o a_o know_a tongue_n be_v ever_o in_o the_o church_n and_o of_o christ_n institution_n and_o yet_o you_o think_v it_o not_o essential_a to_o it_o 4._o the_o use_n of_o the_o second_o commandment_n as_o such_o thou_o shall_v not_o make_v to_o thyself_o any_o grave_a image_n etc._n etc._n be_v ever_o in_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o you_o have_v leave_v it_o out_o of_o the_o decalogue_n 5._o the_o office_n of_o deacon_n have_v be_v ever_o in_o the_o church_n since_o their_o institution_n act._n 6._o yet_o few_o think_v they_o essential_a to_o the_o
the_o cause_n in_o name_v integral_n for_o those_o be_v not_o accident_n ans._n 1._o my_o affirm_v that_o the_o papacy_n be_v as_o much_o a_o accident_n as_o a_o leprosy_n be_v to_o a_o man_n do_v not_o make_v i_o forget_v that_o i_o be_v confute_v his_o assertion_n that_o all_o be_v essential_a to_o the_o church_n which_o be_v institute_v to_o be_v for_o ever_o or_o indeed_o which_o have_v be_v ever_o in_o it_o for_o that_o be_v his_o say_n and_o though_o integral_n be_v not_o accident_n yet_o they_o be_v not_o essential_o be_v this_o hard_a to_o see_v and_o 2._o by_o his_o now_o put_v in_o the_o word_n institute_v he_o will_v make_v the_o reader_n think_v that_o i_o have_v grant_v that_o the_o papacy_n be_v institute_v by_o christ._n 2._o he_o say_v that_o nothing_o can_v be_v a_o accident_n to_o the_o church_n which_o christ_n have_v institute_v to_o be_v perpetual_o in_o the_o church_n and_o consequent_o the_o church_n hold_v any_o thing_n to_o be_v so_o if_o true_a be_v essential_a to_o the_o subsistence_n of_o the_o church_n if_o false_a be_v essential_o destructive_a of_o the_o church_n so_o that_o whether_o true_a or_o false_a it_o will_v never_o be_v accidental_a to_o the_o church_n ans._n 1._o what_o work_n will_v interest_n and_o error_n make_v if_o so_o than_o every_o error_n and_o every_o sin_n of_o the_o church_n be_v essential_o destructive_a of_o the_o church_n for_o christ_n have_v institute_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v perpetual_o hold_v and_o teach_v the_o truth_n only_o and_o obey_v all_o his_o command_n without_o sin_v if_o he_o say_v that_o the_o church_n never_o have_v nor_o have_v sin_n or_o error_n i_o answer_v 1._o if_o a_o essential_a part_n of_o the_o church_n have_v have_v sin_n and_o error_n than_o so_o have_v the_o church_n have_v but_o a_o essential_a part_n in_o their_o account_n that_o be_v their_o suppose_a head_n have_v have_v sin_n and_o error_n to_o pass_v by_o peter_n deny_v christ_n dissuade_v he_o from_o suffer_v till_o he_o hear_v get_v behind_o i_o satan_n mat._n 16._o his_o dissemble_a gal._n 2._o sure_a marcellinus_n sinful_o offer_v incense_n to_o a_o idol_n and_o honorius_n and_o tiberius_n sin_v and_o it_o be_v some_o sin_n in_o those_o pope_n that_o defile_v wife_n and_o maid_n at_o the_o apostolic_a door_n and_o that_o be_v whoremonger_n and_o come_v in_o by_o whore_n and_o poison_n and_o that_o be_v condemn_v as_o simonist_n heretic_n incarnate_a devil_n perjure_a murderer_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o by_o council_n 2._o if_o all_o the_o particular_a member_n of_o the_o church_n have_v some_o error_n or_o sin_n than_o so_o have_v the_o church_n but_o all_o the_o particular_a member_n have_v etc._n etc._n if_o any_o man_n say_v that_o he_o have_v no_o sin_n he_o be_v a_o liar_n and_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o in_o he_o 1._o joh._n 1._o and_o in_o many_o thing_n we_o offend_v all_o jam._n 3._o 2._o etc._n etc._n 2._o why_o then_o do_v he_o accuse_v we_o for_o separate_v from_o rome_n if_o it_o be_v as_o certain_o unchurch_v as_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o they_o have_v have_v sin_n and_o error_n it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o pope_n be_v such_o as_o aforesaid_a or_o the_o council_n sin_v that_o condemn_v they_o as_o such_o and_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o either_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n basil_n and_o pisa_n err_v and_o sin_v which_o decree_v that_o council_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n and_o may_v condemn_v and_o depose_v he_o and_o that_o this_o be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la and_o the_o contrary_a heresy_n or_o else_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n and_o florence_n err_v and_o sin_v that_o say_v the_o contrary_n and_o so_o of_o other_o instance_n 3._o but_o as_o i_o have_v prove_v the_o antecedent_n of_o his_o argument_n false_a already_o so_o his_o consequence_n that_o the_o church_n hold_v any_o thing_n to_o be_v institute_v for_o perpetuity_n be_v essential_a and_o the_o deny_v destructive_a of_o the_o essence_n will_v not_o follow_v but_o on_o two_o supposition_n 1._o that_o such_o institution_n be_v not_o only_a no_o accident_n but_o no_o integral_n 2._o that_o every_o command_v truth_n be_v essential_a which_o be_v both_o false_a for_o else_o the_o institution_n may_v be_v essential_a and_o yet_o not_o the_o believe_a it_o such_o be_v essential_a and_o he_o confess_v that_o such_o belief_n be_v not_o essential_a to_o every_o member_n nor_o can_v he_o tell_v to_o how_o many_o nor_o to_o who_o add_v esse_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la if_o he_o say_v to_z as_o many_o as_o have_v a_o sufficient_a proposal_n 1._o then_o if_o none_o have_v a_o sufficient_a proposal_n it_o will_v cease_v to_o be_v essential_a to_o the_o church_n 2._o then_o if_o any_o one_o sin_n be_v commit_v by_o the_o church_n against_o a_o sufficient_a proposal_n the_o church_n be_v nullify_v if_o he_o say_v it_o be_v not_o know_v how_o many_o must_v believe_v it_o ad_fw-la esse_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la than_o no_o man_n can_v know_v whether_o the_o church_n be_v nullify_v or_o not_o he_o say_v pag._n 6●…_n so_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o it_o by_o all_o those_o to_o who_o it_o be_v sufficient_o propound_v 11._o be_v necessary_a to_o make_v they_o part_n of_o the_o true_a church_n and_o the_o denial_n of_o it_o when_o so_o propound_v hinder_v they_o from_o be_v part_n ans._n 1._o still_o this_o say_v nothing_o to_o the_o question_n how_o far_o and_o in_o who_o it_o be_v essential_a to_o the_o church_n 2._o and_o this_o unchurch_v every_o person_n that_o err_v and_o sin_v against_o any_o one_o word_n of_o scripture_n after_o a_o sufficient_a proposal_n yet_o this_o same_o man_n say_v pag._n 36._o of_o his_o explication_n whatsoever_o their_o neglect_n be_v to_o know_v what_o be_v propound_v yet_o so_o long_o as_o they_o believe_v explicit_o what_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v necessitate_v medii_fw-la and_o implicit_o the_o rest_n they_o can_v be_v no_o heretic_n for_o it_o be_v not_o the_o ignorance_n though_o culpable_a etc._n etc._n and_o do_v the_o wilful_o ignorant_a acknowledge_v it_o reconcile_v these_o if_o you_o can_v 2._o this_o unchurch_v your_o whole_a church_n for_o it_o be_v sufficient_o propose_v even_o in_o express_a word_n in_o the_o scripture_n that_o there_o be_v bread_n in_o the_o eucharist_n after_o consecration_n thrice_o together_o in_o 1_o cor._n 11._o and_o that_o the_o church_n shall_v communicate_v with_o the_o cup_n this_o do_v in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o even_o to_o show_v the_o lord_n death_n till_o he_o come_v and_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o make_v to_o ourselves_o any_o grave_a image_n nor_o bow_v down_o to_o it_o nor_o worship_n it_o and_o that_o we_o shall_v pray_v public_o in_o a_o know_a tongue_n and_o that_o bishop_n shall_v not_o lord_n it_o over_o the_o flock_n etc._n etc._n and_o you_o err_v and_o sin_n after_o this_o sufficient_a proposal_n pag._n 36._o i_o have_v give_v several_a instance_n of_o the_o iberian_o indian_n american_n the_o primitive_a christian_n and_o their_o own_o convert_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o belief_n of_o and_o subjection_n to_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o necessary_a to_o christianity_n or_o salvation_n to_o which_o his_o answer_n be_v very_o remarkable_a viz._n i_o never_o say_v that_o all_o particular_a person_n or_o community_n be_v oblige_v to_o have_v a_o express_a belief_n or_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n supremacy_n that_o be_v necessary_a to_o all_o neither_o necessitate_v medii_fw-la nor_o praecepti_fw-la it_o be_v sufficient_a that_o they_o believe_v it_o implicit_o in_o subject_v themselves_o to_o all_o those_o who_o christ_n have_v institute_v to_o be_v their_o lawful_a pastor_n and_o when_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v sufficient_o propose_v to_o they_o to_o be_v the_o supreme_a visible_a pastor_n of_o those_o pastor_n upon_o earth_n that_o then_o they_o obstinate_o reject_v not_o his_o authority_n ans._n there_o be_v some_o moderation_n in_o this_o though_o it_o utter_o overthrow_v their_o cause_n 1._o this_o full_o prove_v that_o the_o poor_a abassine_n armenian_n and_o such_o other_o for_o all_o the_o popish_a accusation_n of_o they_o be_v neither_o heretic_n nor_o schismatic_n for_o not_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n who_o supremacy_n have_v not_o be_v sufficient_o propose_v to_o they_o and_o so_o that_o the_o church_n be_v great_a than_o the_o pope_n kingdom_n 2._o this_o make_v out_o a_o receive_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n to_o be_v no_o more_o necessary_a than_o the_o receive_n of_o every_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n or_o tradition_n no●…_n than_o the_o receive_n e._n g._n of_o the_o cup_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n for_o all_o be_v essential_o necessary_a say_v they_o when_o sufficient_o propound_v 3._o this_o undeceive_v we_o that_o think_v their_o doctrine_n have_v be_v that_o the_o scripture_n and_o christianity_n must_v necessary_o be_v
church_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n nor_o be_v rome_n itself_o so_o but_o ever_o since_o their_o beginning_n they_o have_v be_v visible_a sometime_o obey_v the_o pope_n and_o sometime_o reject_v he_o the_o abassine_n and_o several_a other_o extra-imperial_a church_n never_o obey_v he_o the_o most_o of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o empire_n the_o eastern_a and_o african_n sometime_o obey_v he_o as_o the_o chief_a in_o the_o empire_n by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o sometime_o they_o cast_v he_o off_o when_o the_o eastern_a empire_n cast_v he_o off_o but_o they_o never_o obey_v he_o as_o the_o sovereign_a bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n iii_o in_o the_o three_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n congregation_n as_o it_o signify_v the_o universal_a church_n i_o confess_v that_o i_o can_v show_v you_o no_o universal_a church_n now_o visible_a reject_v the_o pope_n for_o the_o universal_a leave_v out_o no_o part_n though_o a_o corrupt_a part_n and_o while_o papist_n own_v he_o i_o can_v say_v that_o the_o universal_a church_n disow_v he_o but_o i_o can_v prove_v 1._o that_o the_o primitive_a universal_a church_n never_o own_v any_o universal_a head_n or_o governor_n but_o christ_n and_o his_o twelve_o apostle_n who_o indefinite_a charge_n may_v be_v call_v universal_a 2._o that_o the_o universal_a church_n never_o own_v the_o roman_a universal_a sovereignty_n 3._o that_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o the_o church_n do_v not_o own_o it_o at_o this_o day_n and_o therefore_o if_o the_o whole_a may_v be_v denominate_v from_o the_o major_a part_n we_o may_v say_v that_o now_o the_o universal_a church_n disow_v he_o and_o now_o reader_n answer_v these_o like_a sophism_n and_o you_o have_v answer_v this_o man_n of_o art_n 1._o no_o congregation_n of_o christian_n have_v be_v perpetual_o visible_a but_o that_o which_o acknowledge_v the_o patriarch_n in_o the_o empire_n at_o least_o heretofore_o ergo_fw-la no_o other_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ._n answ._n 1._o but_o another_o be_v part_n and_o the_o best_a part_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ._n 2._o and_o none_o that_o do_v or_o ever_o do_v acknowledge_v those_o patriarch_n be_v the_o whole_a church_n 3._o and_o none_o of_o the_o church_n acknowledge_v they_o at_o first_o before_o they_o be_v erect_v so_o 2._o inst._n no_o congregation_n of_o christian_n have_v be_v perpetual_o visible_a but_o that_o which_o condemn_v the_o monothelite_n the_o nestorian_n the_o eutychian_o the_o audian_o the_o luciferian_o the_o quartodecimani_n etc._n etc._n ergo_fw-la no_o other_o be_v the_o true_a church_n answ._n 1._o part_v of_o the_o church_n condemn_v they_o and_o part_n never_o hear_v of_o they_o and_o before_o they_o rise_v none_o of_o the_o church_n condemn_v they_o so_o another_o instance_n be_v no_o congregation_n of_o christian_n have_v be_v perpetual_o visible_a but_o that_o which_o administer_v the_o eucharist_n only_o in_o one_o kind_n without_o the_o cup_n and_o which_o use_v public_a prayer_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n and_o which_o forbid_v the_o read_v the_o scripture_n translate_v without_o special_a licence_n etc._n etc._n ergo_fw-la no_o other_o be_v the_o true_a church_n answ._n 1._o only_o a_o corrupt_a part_n now_o do_v these_o the_o most_o discover_v it_o and_o none_o be_v guilty_a of_o it_o in_o many_o generation_n do_v there_o need_v any_o other_o answer_n to_o such_o palpable_a sophism_n his_o argument_n plain_o shall_v run_v thus_o no_o congregation_n of_o christian_n have_v be_v perpetual_o visible_a but_o that_o which_o now_o ow_v the_o traitorous_a usurpation_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o of_o lateran_n and_o part_n of_o who_o religion_n be_v for_o exterminate_v or_o burn_v all_o that_o will_v not_o renounce_v all_o belief_n of_o humane_a sense_n in_o believe_v transubstantiation_n and_o for_o cast_v out_o prince_n that_o execute_v not_o this_o and_o absolve_a subject_n from_o their_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n to_o they_o and_o which_o have_v corrupt_v the_o doctrine_n worship_n and_o government_n of_o christ_n ergo_fw-la no_o other_o be_v the_o true_a church_n answ._n a_o disease_a part_n of_o the_o church_n only_o be_v guilty_a of_o this_o now_o and_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v far_o from_o it_o heretofore_o but_o pag._n 83._o he_o tell_v i_o that_o he_o mean_v neither_o one_o present_a assembly_n nor_o yet_o one_o as_o unite_v in_o one_o visible_a humane_a head_n but_o abstract_v from_o that_o also_o be_v it_o but_o true_o and_o proper_o one_o 6._o whencesoever_o the_o unity_n be_v draw_v it_o be_v all_o alike_a to_o the_o solution_n of_o the_o argument_n answ._n then_o sure_o our_o business_n be_v in_o a_o hopeful_a way_n if_o not_o as_o good_a as_o end_v remember_v this_o and_o fly_v not_o from_o it_o our_o unity_n be_v in_o christ_n our_o head_n one_o king_n make_v we_o one_o kingdom_n all_o christian_n be_v one_o body_n of_o christ._n yea_o moreover_o we_o be_v one_o in_o all_o the_o seven_o point_n of_o unity_n require_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n eph._n 4._o viz._n we_o have_v 1._o one_o body_n of_o christ_n not_o of_o the_o pope_n 2._o one_o spirit_n 3._o one_o hope_n of_o our_o call_v viz._n eternal_a glory_n 4_o one_o lord_n without_o a_o vice-christ_n 5._o one_o faith_n summary_o in_o the_o creed_n and_o integral_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 6._o one_o baptism_n or_o solemnize_v baptismal_a covenant_n 7._o one_o god_n and_o father_n of_o all_o who_o be_v above_o all_o and_o through_o all_o and_o in_o we_o all_o yea_o as_o to_o the_o integral_n though_o our_o grace_n have_v various_a degree_n we_o all_o receive_v the_o inspire_a prophet_n apostle_n and_o evangelist_n authority_n and_o doctrine_n and_o the_o ordinary_a pastor_n and_o teacher_n that_o be_v send_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o call_v by_o the_o way_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v though_o we_o receive_v not_o a_o usurper_n that_o make_v himself_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n in_o title_n while_o he_o govern_v not_o the_o ten_o part_n of_o it_o nor_o any_o according_a to_o god_n law_n and_o who_o be_v oft_o obtrude_v by_o whore_n and_o murder_n and_o be_v a_o wicked_a slave_n of_o satan_n so_o judge_v by_o his_o own_o general_n council_n we_o acknowledge_v that_o there_o be_v among_o we_o different_a opinion_n but_o neither_o for_o kind_a or_o number_n comparable_a to_o the_o difference_n of_o the_o papal_a sectary_n among_o themselves_o not_o for_o kind_a such_o as_o about_o murder_n adultery_n perjury_n lie_v false-witness_n yea_o about_o the_o love_n of_o god_n itself_o be_v by_o the_o jansenist_n charge_v on_o the_o jesuit_n and_o prove_v out_o of_o their_o express_a word_n nor_o such_o as_o mr._n clarkson_n have_v collect_v from_o the_o express_a word_n of_o their_o most_o famous_a doctor_n of_o all_o party_n nor_o such_o about_o king-killing_a dissolve_v subject_n oath_n etc._n etc._n as_o h._n fowlis_n have_v gather_v from_o the_o express_a word_n of_o your_o great_a doctor_n and_o for_o number_n all_o the_o sect_n in_o the_o world_n of_o christian_n set_v together_o have_v not_o half_a the_o controversy_n and_o contentious_a write_n against_o each_o other_o as_o your_o schoolman_n and_o other_o writer_n of_o your_o church_n have_v for_o our_o part_n we_o look_v not_o that_o our_o union_n shall_v be_v perfect_a till_o our_o wisdom_n and_o holiness_n and_o patience_n and_o we_o ourselves_o be_v perfect_a they_o that_o know_v but_o in_o part_n will_v err_v in_o part_n and_o differ_v in_o part_n we_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v diversity_n of_o gift_n but_o the_o same_o spirit_n and_o difference_n of_o administration_n but_o the_o same_o lord_n and_o diversity_n of_o operation_n but_o the_o same_o god_n who_o work_v all_o in_o all_o for_o as_o the_o bedy_n be_v one_o and_o have_v many_o member_n and_o all_o the_o member_n of_o that_o one_o body_n be_v many_o be_v one_o body_n so_o also_o be_v christ_n for_o by_o one_o spirit_n we_o be_v baptize_v into_o one_o body_n and_o have_v be_v all_o make_v to_o drink_v into_o one_o spirit_n thus_o be_v we_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n not_o of_o the_o pope_n and_o member_n in_o particular_a and_o god_n have_v set_v some_o in_o this_o body_n the_o church_n first_o apostle_n not_o first_o a_o vice-christ_n second_o prophet_n three_o teacher_n but_o no_o universal_a vicar-head_n all_o these_o be_v member_n and_o shall_v so_o live_v in_o love_n that_o there_o be_v no_o schism_n in_o the_o body_n but_o pag._n 84._o the_o man_n be_v not_o satisfy_v though_o i_o name_v they_o what_o i_o mean_v by_o these_o church_n unite_v in_o one_o christ._n 7._o answ._n how_o shall_v i_o make_v a_o man_n know_v that_o be_v unwilling_a or_o how_o but_o by_o name_v they_o by_o their_o country_n and_o profession_n i_o mean_v all_z the_o christian_n of_o
abassia_n armenia_n egypt_n syria_n the_o georgian_n the_o jacobite_n those_o false_o call_v by_o you_o nestorian_n and_o eutychian_o the_o african_n greek_n muscovite_n the_o britain_n seot_n swede_n dane_n belgian_n saxon_n helvetian_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o german_n transilvanian_o hungarian_n french_a etc._n etc._n which_o now_o disow_v the_o papacy_n who_o be_v some_o country_n never_o under_o the_o pope_n some_o country_n at_o first_o under_o he_o and_o after_o reject_v he_o and_o some_o at_o first_o from_o under_o his_o government_n next_o under_o he_o and_o after_o repent_v and_o all_o of_o they_o have_v be_v christian_n from_o their_o first_o conversion_n to_o this_o day_n can_v i_o speak_v plain_a but_o num._n 42._o he_o grant_v that_o all_o that_o be_v true_a christian_n be_v one_o kingdom_n or_o church_n of_o 8._o christ_n but_o deny_v that_o these_o be_v true_a christian_n and_o pag._n 84._o he_o will_v seem_v to_o give_v some_o reason_n for_o his_o denial_n say_v i_o deny_v it_o if_o they_o be_v independent_a on_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n answ._n 1._o even_o now_o he_o abstract_v from_o this_o but_o now_o they_o be_v no_o christian_n unless_o they_o be_v dependendents_n on_o the_o pope_n such_o a_o denial_n be_v a_o easy_a task_n and_o the_o sum_n of_o all_o their_o write_n but_o what_o need_v there_o then_o so_o many_o ambages_fw-la and_o large_a volume_n to_o bring_v out_o such_o a_o short_a and_o crude_a assertion_n can_v you_o not_o have_v say_v this_o without_o all_o the_o rest_n he_o be_v no_o christian_n that_o depend_v not_o on_o the_o pope_n but_o be_v it_o not_o incumbent_n on_o you_o to_o prove_v it_o undoubted_o it_o be_v 1._o in_o foro_fw-la scholastico_fw-la as_o a_o affirmer_n 2._o in_o foro_fw-la civili_fw-la &_o ecclesiastico_fw-la as_o a_o accuser_n and_o till_o you_o have_v prove_v it_o what_o need_v they_o or_o i_o care_v for_o yoùr_fw-la word_n must_v all_o man_n pass_v for_o no_o christian_n that_o a_o priest_n or_o jesuit_n will_v say_v be_v none_o or_o be_o i_o and_o all_o man_n disoblige_v from_o love_v all_o those_o as_o christian_n who_o such_o as_o you_o will_v affirm_v to_o be_v no_o christian_n love_n be_v easy_o destroy_v if_o this_o much_o will_v do_v it_o but_o it_o cost_v more_o than_o so_o to_o cause_v it_o pag._n 85._o he_o add_v let_v they_o have_v be_v as_o visible_a as_o you_o please_v that_o be_v nothing_o to_o i_o so_o be_v the_o arrian_n sabellian_o montanist_n etc._n etc._n prove_v they_o be_v no_o more_o than_o one_o visible_a congregation_n 9_o of_o christian_n among_o themselves_o and_o with_o orthodox_n christian_n that_o be_v the_o present_a controversy_n answ._n i_o hope_v we_o shall_v find_v out_o the_o controversy_n at_o last_o though_o it_o seem_v as_o hard_a almost_o as_o to_o resolve_v it_o how_o oft_o must_v i_o repeat_v the_o same_o proof_n again_o my_o proof_n be_v this_o those_o that_o be_v baptize_v into_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n and_o hold_v all_o essential_a to_o christianity_n not_o apostatise_v from_o the_o whole_a or_o any_o essential_a part_n be_v true_a christian_n but_o such_o be_v they_o before_o mention_v 1._o that_o they_o be_v baptise_a be_v not_o deny_v and_o baptise_v be_v christening_n and_o suppose_v the_o profession_n of_o all_o that_o be_v essential_a to_o christianity_n or_o else_o it_o can_v not_o make_v they_o christian_n 2._o no_o man_n that_o profess_v himself_o a_o christian_n must_v be_v take_v to_o be_v no_o christian_n till_o he_o be_v convict_v by_o lawful_a proof_n because_o as_o sincerity_n or_o heart-consent_n to_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v our_o christianity_n as_o invisible_a before_o god_n so_o baptism_n and_o profess_a consent_n to_o that_o covenant_n be_v our_o visible_a christianity_n before_o man_n every_o man_n be_v the_o expositor_n of_o his_o own_o belief_n and_o resolution_n but_o that_o these_o church_n have_v apostat●…zed_v from_o the_o whole_a or_o any_o essential_a part_n of_o christianity_n be_v unprove_v and_o therefore_o not_o to_o be_v suppose_v as_o every_o particular_a man_n be_v to_o be_v take_v for_o a_o christian_n who_o be_v baptize_v and_o profess_v it_o till_o his_o profession_n be_v disprove_v so_o much_o more_o whole_a country_n and_o church_n that_o profess_v christianity_n must_v not_o be_v suppose_v without_o proof_n to_o be_v no_o christian_n if_o a_o papist_n will_v say_v to_o all_o the_o man_n in_o the_o city_n prove_v that_o you_o be_v no_o thief_n no_o adulterer_n no_o murderer_n no_o liar_n no_o traitor_n or_o else_o i_o will_v take_v you_o for_o such_o i_o think_v they_o may_v more_o just_o say_v prove_v that_o we_o be_v such_o or_o else_o we_o will_v take_v you_o for_o a_o standerer_n and_o that_o they_o be_v of_o one_o church_n i_o prove_v all_o christian_n be_v one_o church_n but_o those_o be_v christian_n therefore_o of_o one_o church_n the_o major_n be_v certain_a they_o that_o be_v the_o member_n and_o subject_n of_o one_o christ_n be_v of_o one_o church_n all_o christian_n be_v the_o member_n and_o subject_n of_o one_o christ_n therefore_o they_o be_v of_o one_o church_n all_o that_o have_v the_o seven_o term_n of_o union_n before_o mention_v out_o of_o eph._n 4._o be_v of_o one_o church_n but_o such_o be_v these_o before_o name_v here_o remember_v 1._o that_o i_o plead_v not_o for_o the_o christianity_n of_o any_o that_o be_v prove_v to_o deny_v indeed_o any_o one_o essential_a point_n of_o christianity_n but_o i_o will_v not_o believe_v this_o man_n that_o every_o thing_n institute_v by_o christ_n and_o so_o every_o word_n in_o the_o bible_n be_v such_o a_o essential_a nor_o that_o our_o church_n or_o religion_n be_v so_o strange_a a_o thing_n as_o to_o have_v no_o perpetual_a integral_a part_n nor_o accident_n but_o what_o will_v not_o some_o man_n have_v a_o face_n to_o defend_v 2._o that_o this_o same_o man_n have_v already_o maintain_v that_o no_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n to_o who_o he_o be_v not_o sufficient_o propound_v and_o that_o he_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v not_o yet_o agree_v among_o they_o that_o any_o more_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o be_v explicit_o believe_v than_o that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n and_o reward_n for_o good_a work_n and_o yet_o two_o or_o three_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n must_v be_v no_o christian_n nor_o member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n because_o they_o be_v not_o member_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o let_v it_o be_v still_o remember_v to_o acquit_v the_o eastern_a and_o southern_a church_n from_o the_o papist_n charge_v of_o heresy_n as_o be_v nestorian_n and_o eutychian_o 1._o that_o the_o accuser_n be_v to_o be_v take_v for_o calumniator_n till_o they_o prove_v it_o by_o all_o the_o rule_n of_o common_a justice_n 2._o that_o if_o they_o can_v prove_v dioscorus_n e._n g._n a_o eutychian_a that_o be_v no_o proof_n that_o all_o the_o bishop_n that_o adhere_v to_o he_o be_v such_o for_o it_o be_v apparent_a by_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n that_o multitude_n adhere_v to_o he_o because_o they_o think_v he_o no_o eutychian_a and_o derodon_n the_o supposit●…_n have_v undeniable_o prove_v that_o dioscorus_n say_v but_o what_o his_o predecessor_n cyril_n have_v oft_o say_v who_o you_o approve_v and_o many_o because_o they_o think_v the_o judgement_n unjust_a that_o judge_v he_o so_o and_o cast_v he_o out_o and_o many_o for_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o seat_n yea_o many_o for_o fear_n of_o death_n by_o the_o people_n that_o be_v affect_v to_o he_o as_o their_o patriarch_n though_o they_o understand_v not_o the_o cause_n in_o question_n he_o that_o read_v the_o bishop_n at_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n part_n cry_v out_o prostrate_a on_o the_o earth_n miseremini_fw-la miseremini_fw-la non_fw-la dissentimus_fw-la else_o kill_v we_o here_o we_o dare_v not_o go_v home_o if_o we_o desert_n and_o rail_v against_o our_o patriarch_n before_o another_o be_v choose_v the_o people_n will_v kill_v we_o and_o another_o part_n of_o they_o confess_v that_o fear_n make_v they_o subscribe_v at_o the_o council_n at_o ephes._n 2._o and_o some_o cry_v out_o away_o with_o they_o they_o be_v heretic_n who_o cry_v non_fw-la dissentimus_fw-la may_v well_o judge_v that_o all_o be_v not_o heretic_n that_o clamour_n call_v so_o 3._o if_o they_o can_v prove_v those_o few_o bishop_n that_o be_v open_o accuse_v and_o note_v to_o be_v eutychian_o that_o be_v no_o proof_n that_o the_o rest_n be_v so_o 4._o if_o they_o can_v prove_v that_o many_o than_o be_v so_o that_o will_v not_o prove_v that_o those_o that_o now_o there_o inhabit_v be_v so_o 5._o and_o of_o nestorianism_n there_o be_v less_o public_a show_n of_o proof_n 6._o and_o indeed_o the_o main_a body_n of_o the_o common_a
by_o voluntary_a subjection_n yet_o so_o be_v not_o the_o church_n which_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n plant_v without_o the_o empire_n a●…_n those_o apostle_n be_v not_o subject_a to_o st._n peter_n 6._o and_o why_o do_v you_o so_o arrogant_o accuse_v such_o vast_a church_n as_o arm●…nia_n ethiopia_n india_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n plant_v beside_o peter_n and_o paul_n and_o take_v they_o all_o for_o rebel_n and_o schismatic_n and_o yet_o bring_v no_o word_n of_o proof_n for_o your_o accusation_n but_o the_o truth_n be_v reynerius_n though_o he_o revolt_v from_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o his_o time_n be_v a_o honest_a man_n than_o the_o pope_n that_o shall_v thus_o be_v his_o expositor_n and_o yet_o w._n i_o be_v not_o the_o pope_n and_o therefore_o i_o question_v his_o partial_a exposition_n next_o i_o mention_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n which_o say_v that_o the_o father_n in_o council_n give_v rome_n the_o pre-eminence_n etc._n etc._n he_o reply_v that_o 1._o the_o greek_a word_n be_v 17._o not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d exhibit_v or_o defer_v to_o rome_n as_o ever_o before_o due_a to_o it_o by_o the_o right_n of_o the_o apostolic_a see_v of_o st._n peter_n establish_v there_o ans._n you_o be_v hard_o put_v to_o it_o when_o you_o have_v no_o better_a shift_n than_o so_o useless_a a_o criticism_n 1._o you_o know_v i_o suppose_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d may_v have_v a_o signification_n as_o remote_a from_o do●…ation_n as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o that_o your_o own_o common_a translation_n be_v tribuere_fw-la and_o i_o desire_v no_o more_o 2._o be_v here_o ever_o a_o word_n in_o the_o canon_n that_o say_v it_o be_v ever_o before_o due_a not_o a_o word_n 3._o be_v not_o the_o same_o word_n use_v of_o the_o give_v of_o equal_a privilege_n to_o constantinople_n as_o ●…is_n of_o give_v or_o defer_v it_o to_o rome_n the_o same_o word_n and_o do_v they_o mean_v that_o this_o belong_v ever_o to_o constantinople_n and_o that_o of_o divine_a right_n you_o dare_v not_o say_v so_o 4._o do_v they_o not_o say_v that_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n they_o judge_v that_o constantinople_n shall_v have_v equal_a privilege_n because_o it_o be_v the_o royal_a city_n and_o be_v this_o famous_a council_n of_o which_o you_o boast_v as_o obey_v leo_n epistle_n so_o sottish_a and_o absurd_a as_o to_o argue_v thus_o because_o old_a rome_n have_v the_o first_o seat_n assign_v to_o it_o on_o this_o account_n because_o it_o be_v the_o imperial_a seat_n and_o that_o be_v because_o it_o be_v ever_o before_o its_o due_a as_o st_n peter_n chair_n therefore_o we_o judge_v that_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n constantinople_n shall_v have_v equal_a privilege_n because_o it_o be_v now_o new_a rome_n the_o imperial_a seat_n though_o it_o be_v never_o due_a to_o it_o before_o as_o the_o seat_n of_o any_o apostle_n o_o what_o can_v some_o man_n believe_v or_o seem_v to_o believe_v and_o how_o much_o do_v it_o conern_v your_o church_n to_o be_v the_o expositor_n and_o judge_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o all_o council_n as_o well_o as_o of_o god_n word_n he_o add_v that_o the_o canon_n say_v not_o that_o this_o be_v the_o sole_a reason_n ans._n 1_o but_o the_o canon_n say_v this_o be_v the_o reason_n and_o assign_v no_o other_o 2._o and_o if_o it_o make_v not_o it_o the_o great_a reason_n which_o the_o church_n be_v to_o take_v for_o the_o fundamentum_fw-la juris_fw-la they_o will_v never_o have_v lay_v the_o right_n of_o constantinople_n on_o the_o same_o foundation_n as_o by_o parity_n of_o reason_n the_o plain_a truth_n be_v but_o interest_n and_o partiality_n can_v endure_v plain_a truth_n he_o that_o will_v not_o be_v deceive_v by_o cite_a by-word_n of_o the_o ancient_n must_v distinguish_v between_o the_o tit●…lus_n or_o fundamentum_fw-la juris_fw-la and_o the_o ratio_fw-la or_o motive_n of_o the_o statute_n or_o constitution_n the_o first_o be_v the_o law_n of_o emperor_n and_o council_n this_o only_o give_v the_o right_n the_o second_o be_v prevail_o and_o principal_o that_o which_o the_o canon_n here_o assign_v that_o rome_n be_v the_o great_a city_n and_o the_o imperial_a seat_n but_o as_o a_o honorary_a tittle_n add_v to_o the_o motive_n they_o say_v sometime_o that_o it_o be_v the_o seat_n of_o peter_n and_o sometime_o of_o peter_n and_o paul_n and_o sometime_o they_o mention_v paul_n alone_o and_o cry_v as_o at_o ephesus_n magno_fw-la paul●…_n cyrillo_n magne_n paulo_n celestino_n but_o note_v that_o they_o give_v often_o the_o same_o reason_n for_o the_o patriarchal_a honour_n of_o antioch_n that_o it_o be_v sedes_fw-la petri_n and_o therefore_o never_o take_v this_o to_o be_v either_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o right_n or_o the_o chief_a determine_a motive_n of_o the_o constitution_n he_o add_v that_o else_o it_o have_v be_v a_o contradiction_n when_o the_o father_n say_v that_o dioscorus_n have_v extend_v his_o felony_n against_o he_o to_o who_o our_o saviour_n have_v commit_v the_o charge_n and_o care_n of_o his_o vineyard_n that_o be_v of_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n ans._n 1._o no_o doubt_n but_o they_o acknowledge_v that_o christ_n commit_v the_o care_n of_o his_o vineyard_n to_o peter_n and_o every_o one_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o to_o all_o bishop_n as_o their_o successor_n though_o not_o in_o apostleship_n and_o they_o acknowledge_v rome_n the_o primate_n in_o the_o empire_n and_o when_o dioscor_v we_o undertake_v to_o excommunicate_a leo_n they_o suppose_v that_o he_o transgress_v the_o law_n of_o the_o imperial_a church_n and_o therefore_o anatolius_n in_o the_o council_n when_o the_o indices_fw-la say_v that_o dioscor_n we_o condemn_v flavian_n for_o say_v christ_n have_v two_o nature_n answer_v that_o dioscorus_n be_v not_o condemn_v propter_fw-la fidem_fw-la but_o for_o excommunicate_v leo_n and_o for_o not_o appear_v when_o he_o be_v send_v for_o 2._o be_v here_o any_o word_n that_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v sovereign_a of_o all_o the_o earth_n do_v not_o the_o council_n in_o that_o very_a letter_n to_o leo_n say_v that_o the_o emperor_n have_v call_v the_o council_n not_o ascribe_v it_o to_o any_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o also_o that_o the_o say_n mat._n 28_o go_v teach_v all_o nation_n etc._n etc._n be_v deliver_v to_o they_o which_o be_v the_o care_n of_o the_o vineyard_n and_o not_o only_o to_o the_o pope_n quam_fw-la nobis_fw-la olim_fw-la ipse_fw-la salvator_fw-la tradidit_fw-la ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la but_o say_v w._n i._n the_o true_a reason_n why_o this_o canon_n mention_v rather_o the_o imperial_a authority_n of_o that_o city_n than_o the_o right_n from_o st._n peter_n be_v because_o it_o suit_v better_a with_o the_o pretension_n of_o anatolius_n 1●…_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n and_o his_o complice_n for_o the_o elevaton_n of_o that_o sea_n than_o any_o other_o for_o they_o have_v no_o other_o etc._n etc._n ans._n it_o be_v true_a but_o do_v anatolias_n and_o his_o complice_n that_o be_v the_o council_n speak_v sincere_o and_o true_o here_o or_o false_o if_o true_o that_o be_v all_o that_o i_o cite_v they_o for_o if_o false_o as_o worldly_a unconscionable_a man_n that_o be_v set_v up_o themselves_o why_o host_n we_o of_o general_a council_n even_o of_o this_o and_o of_o their_o word_n to_o leo_n how_o can_v we_o tell_v when_o to_o trust_v they_o and_o whether_o they_o that_o subscribe_v against_o flavian_n at_o ephes._n 2._o and_o after_o cry_v omnes_fw-la peccavimus_fw-la at_o chalcedon_n when_o they_o be_v under_o a_o martian_a and_o not_o theodosius_n will_v not_o have_v acquit_v dioscorus_n and_o condemn_v leo_n and_o elavian_n again_o if_o another_o theodosius_n have_v come_v but_o if_o they_o be_v credible_a believe_v they_o but_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o a_o law_n of_o theodosius_n and_o valentine_n put_v both_o reason_n together_o etc._n etc._n ans._n i_o tell_v you_o in_o what_o sense_n even_o now_o even_o as_o they_o put_v the_o name_n of_o peter_n seat_n as_o a_o reason_n 1●…_n of_o the_o honour_n of_o antioch_n a_o honorary_a motive_n to_o their_o law_n and_o he_o here_o confess_v himself_o that_o alexander_n and_o antioch_n have_v the_o second_o and_o three_o place_n because_o they_o be_v the_o second_o and_o three_o great_a city_n of_o the_o empire_n but_o he_o say_v that_o st._n peter_n think_v it_o convenient_a that_o the_o high_a spiritual_a authority_n shall_v be_v place_v in_o that_o city_n which_o have_v the_o high_a temporal_a power_n ans._n say_v you_o so_o 1._o where_o be_v that_o canon_n of_o st._n peter_n to_o be_v find_v and_o prove_v 2._o if_o so_o then_o why_o be_v not_o this_o canon_n produce_v for_o the_o regulate_v of_o all_o other_o church_n why_o do_v canterbury_n take_v place_n of_o london_n
necessary_a to_o make_v we_o member_n answ._n as_o the_o union_n of_o king_n and_o subject_n make_v one_o kingdom_n so_o the_o union_n of_o christ_n and_o christian_n make_v one_o church_n and_o we_o call_v none_o christian_n that_o profess_v not_o true_a faith_n and_o charity_n and_o their_o seed_n but_o he_o say_v the_o question_n be_v how_o a_o heretic_n or_o schismatic_a can_v be_v a_o true_a christian._n answ._n ambiguous_a word_n be_v the_o game_n of_o deceiver_n and_o to_o open_v the_o ambiguity_n mar_v their_o cause_n the_o word_n heretic_n i_o have_v tell_v you_o signify_v either_o one_o that_o deny_v a_o essential_a part_n of_o christianity_n or_o one_o that_o only_o deny_v a_o integral_a part_n the_o former_a be_v no_o christian_n the_o latter_a may_v §_o 13._o but_o he_o will_v prove_v that_o no_o heretic_n be_v a_o christian_n or_o have_v true_a faith_n viz._n whoever_o have_v true_a faith_n believe_v the_o material_a object_n of_o faith_n for_o the_o divine_a authority_n of_o god_n reveal_v it_o that_o be_v certain_a but_o so_o do_v no_o heretic_n that_o be_v very_o false_a of_o both_o sort_n of_o heretic_n 1._o you_o call_v the_o luciferian_o the_o novatian_o etc._n etc._n heretic_n and_o who_o can_v see_v reason_n to_o doubt_v but_o they_o may_v believe_v that_o all_o that_o god_n say_v be_v true_a 2._o overdo_v be_v undo_v as_o you_o be_v the_o great_a cause_n of_o schism_n by_o overdo_v as_o against_o schism_n so_o you_o will_v justify_v almost_o all_o the_o heretic_n in_o the_o world_n by_o your_o blind_a over_n as_o against_o heretic_n and_o while_o you_o will_v make_v most_o or_o much_o of_o christ_n church_n to_o be_v heretic_n you_o will_v make_v man_n believe_v that_o there_o be_v none_o all_o that_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n believe_v that_o he_o be_v verax_n no_o liar_n but_o true_a all_o that_o believe_v that_o god_n be_v no_o liar_n but_o true_a of_o his_o word_n believe_v all_o to_o be_v true_a which_o they_o judge_v to_o be_v his_o word_n but_o say_v w._n ay_o no_o heretic_n believe_v any_o thing_n on_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n reveal_v that_o be_v because_o god_n that_o reveal_v it_o be_v true_a and_o so_o all_o those_o that_o believe_v that_o god_n be_v true_a and_o that_o any_o thing_n be_v true_a because_o he_o reveal_v it_o be_v no_o heretic_n and_o who_o know_v other_o man_n heart_n better_a you_o or_o they_o you_o take_v i_o its_o like_a for_o a_o heretic_n i_o say_v that_o i_o believe_v that_o god_n can_v lie_v and_o i_o believe_v in_o christ_n because_o god_n the_o ●…evealer_n be_v true_a you_o say_v then_o i_o be_o no_o heretic_n if_o a_o arrian_n can_v but_o true_o say_v that_o he_o believe_v all_o god_n word_n to_o be_v true_a but_o he_o take_v not_o christ_n consubstantial_a eternal_a deity_n to_o be_v god_n word_n you_o will_v justify_v he_o to_o be_v no_o heretic_n and_o yet_o the_o poor_a iconoclast_n the_o waldenses_n the_o berengarian_o can_v find_v no_o place_n in_o this_o man_n church_n when_o yet_o he_o thus_o acquit_v almost_o all_o heretic_n in_o the_o whole_a world_n nothing_o but_o humorous_a singularity_n can_v pretend_v any_o probable_a reason_n why_o a_o arrian_n a_o nestorian_a a_o eutychian_a a_o monothelite_n yea_o a_o mahometan_a or_o other_o infidel_n may_v not_o believe_v that_o god_n be_v no_o liar_n but_o all_o that_o be_v indeed_o his_o word_n be_v true_a §_o 14._o but_o he_o will_v not_o be_v unreasonable_a without_o reason_n his_o argument_n be_v whosoever_o believe_v the_o material_a object_n of_o faith_n for_o the_o divine_a authority_n of_o god_n reveal_v it_o must_v believe_v all_o thing_n which_o be_v as_o sufficient_o propound_v to_o he_o to_o be_v reveal_v of_o god_n as_o be_v the_o article_n which_o he_o believe_v protest_v to_o and_o believe_v nothing_o as_o reveal_v which_o be_v as_o sufficient_o declare_v to_o he_o to_o be_v erroneous_a and_o not_o reveal_v etc._n etc._n but_o every_o heretic_n do_v otherwise_o if_o he_o believe_v some_o and_o refuse_v other_o equal_o propound_v it_o be_v not_o for_o divine_a authority_n answ._n if_o you_o believe_v this_o reason_n yourself_o you_o deserve_v little_a belief_n from_o other_o 1._o the_o word_n sufficient_o propound_v will_v never_o sufficient_o be_v expound_v by_o you_o nor_o ever_o be_v like_a to_o be_v sometime_o by_o sufficient_a as_o in_o the_o dominican_n controversy_n of_o sufficient_a grace_n be_v mean_v that_o which_o quo_fw-la posito_fw-la res_fw-la fieri_fw-la potest_fw-la &_o sine_fw-la quo_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la and_o so_o take_v as_o necessarium_fw-la or_o possible_a for_o the_o minimum_fw-la tale_n it_o have_v no_o degree_n but_o usual_o we_o take_v sufficient_a in_o such_o a_o latitude_n as_o that_o thing_n may_v be_v in_o many_o degree_n one_o more_o sufficient_a than_o another_o that_o be_v more_o apt_a and_o powerful_a to_o produce_v the_o effect_n and_o for_o the_o first_o remember_v that_o if_o you_o judge_v so_o merciful_o of_o heretic_n as_o that_o no_o one_o be_v such_o that_o have_v not_o a_o proposal_n in_o the_o very_a first_o sense_n sufficient_a you_o can_v call_v no_o arrian_n nor_o photinian_n or_o gnostick_n a_o heretic_n till_o you_o know_v that_o the_o proposal_n be_v to_o he_o sufficient_a and_o how_o much_o less_o can_v you_o call_v the_o nestorian_n or_o eutychian_o or_o the_o abassine_n syrian_n armenian_n etc._n etc._n heretic_n when_o you_o know_v they_o not_o and_o know_v not_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o their_o proposal_n and_o to_o know_v that_o a_o proposal_n be_v sufficient_a to_o nestorius_n eutyches_n or_o dioscorus_n do_v not_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v such_o sufficient_a proposal_n to_o all_o other_o that_o go_v under_o such_o name_n either_o then_o or_o now_o who_o know_v not_o that_o a_o unlearned_a man_n have_v need_v of_o clear_a and_o oft_o teach_v than_o the_o learned_a and_o one_o that_o by_o education_n be_v prepossess_v with_o contrary_a conception_n have_v need_v of_o more_o than_o the_o unprejudiced_a and_o one_o that_o be_v corrupt_v by_o sensual_a lust_n have_v need_v of_o more_o than_o the_o temperate_a and_o what_o man_n be_v well_o able_a to_o judge_v of_o the_o measure_n of_o sufficiency_n as_o to_o other_o then_o much_o less_o to_o whole_a nation_n who_o we_o know_v not_o 2._o but_o as_o to_o your_o minor_n which_o by_o the_o word_n as_o sufficient_o show_v that_o you_o take_v sufficiency_n as_o it_o have_v degree_n here_o you_o seem_v plain_o to_o absolve_v all_o the_o heretic_n in_o the_o world_n e._n g._n as_o if_o a_o monothelite_n be_v no_o heretic_n unless_o it_o be_v as_o sufficient_o in_o degree_n reveal_v that_o christ_n have_v two_o will_n as_o it_o be_v that_o he_o be_v the_o christ_n and_o rise_v again_o or_o as_o if_o a_o arrian_n be_v no_o heretic_n unless_o it_o be_v as_o sufficient_o reveal_v that_o christ_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o same_o substance_n with_o the_o father_n as_o it_o be_v that_o he_o die_v 3._o and_o the_o supposition_n in_o your_o minor_n be_v notorious_o false_a that_o all_o heretic_n have_v as_o sufficient_a a_o proposal_n of_o all_o they_o deny_v as_o of_o that_o which_o they_o believe_v for_o if_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n reveal_v be_v not_o equal_o plain_a and_o intelligible_a than_o the_o proposal_n be_v not_o equal_o sufficient_a but_o &c_n &c_n can_v any_o man_n not_o blind_v by_o faction_n believe_v that_o god_n have_v no_o more_o plain_o tell_v we_o that_o christ_n die_v rose_n and_o ascend_v than_o that_o he_o have_v two_o distinct_a will_n or_o that_o he_o have_v but_o one_o person_n or_o that_o his_o mother_n be_v to_o be_v call_v the_o parent_n of_o god_n and_o one_o that_o do_v beget_v and_o bring_v forth_o god_n and_o that_o god_n die_v yea_o or_o that_o christ_n be_v god_n of_o god_n light_a of_o light_n very_a god_n of_o very_a god_n and_o yet_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d not_o only_o from_o the_o same_o substance_n but_o the_o same_o substance_n though_o these_o be_v equal_o true_a they_o be_v not_o equal_o clear_a and_o evident_a do_v the_o quartodecimani_n the_o luciferian_o the_o jovinians_n deny_v truth_n as_o sufficient_o propose_v as_o that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n or_o a_o christ_n if_o you_o say_v that_o though_o they_o be_v not_o equal_o propose_v in_o scripture_n yet_o they_o be_v by_o council_n or_o tradition_n i_o answer_v 1._o be_v they_o no_o point_n of_o faith_n nor_o the_o denial_n heresy_n for_o 300_o year_n before_o the_o first_o general_n council_n 2._o when_o they_o of_o constance_n and_o basil_n be_v for_o the_o supremacy_n of_o council_n as_o de_fw-fr fide_fw-la and_o they_o of_o lateran_n and_o florence_n against_o they_o when_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n decree_v the_o immaculate_a conception_n of_o the_o
man_n salvation_n and_o all_o the_o church_n peace_n and_o safety_n be_v think_v to_o be_v at_o stake_n upon_o the_o controversy_n whether_o the_o christo_fw-la locutio_fw-la formalis_fw-la a_o materialis_fw-la erat_fw-la maximè_fw-la propria_fw-la an_fw-mi deus_fw-la à_fw-la sp._n sancto_n in_o virgin_n concipi_fw-la &_o ab_fw-la ipsâ_fw-la generari_fw-la propriè_fw-la diceretur_fw-la whether_o nestorius_n be_v a_o heretic_n for_o say_v that_o he_o will_v not_o say_v god_n be_v two_o or_o three_o month_n old_a and_o when_o poor_a eutyches_n and_o dioscorus_n for_o want_v of_o skill_n think_v very_o they_o have_v speak_v but_o what_o cyril_n teach_v they_o and_o become_v heretic_n by_o it_o before_o they_o be_v aware_a when_o the_o grand_a question_n be_v whether_o the_o word_n persona_fw-la have_v such_o a_o signification_n as_o that_o christ_n humane_a nature_n may_v be_v call_v any_o part_n of_o his_o person_n or_o whether_o the_o divine_a nature_n which_o be_v infinite_a can_v be_v parson_n and_o whether_o if_o the_o humane_a be_v pars_fw-la personae_fw-la than_o that_o personality_n which_o be_v from_o eternity_n without_o the_o humane_a can_v be_v the_o same_o with_o that_o personality_n of_o which_o the_o humane_a be_v a_o part_n or_o if_o the_o humane_a be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o person_n but_o a_o accident_n whether_o it_o be_v proper_a to_o denominate_v the_o person_n and_o essence_n from_o a_o accident_n so_o as_o to_o say_v god_n be_v beget_v of_o mary_n god_n be_v two_o month_n old_a god_n be_v dead_a and_o bury_v ascend_v etc._n etc._n and_o when_o the_o whole_a salvation_n of_o man_n seem_v to_o lie_v on_o the_o curiosity_n how_o far_o two_o nature_n or_o two_o will_n so_o near_o unite_v as_o to_o have_v a_o communication_n of_o name_n and_o epithet_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v make_v one_o no_o doubt_n but_o in_o all_o these_o the_o orthodox_n be_v in_o the_o right_n but_o it_o be_v pity_n that_o when_o logic_n be_v so_o deny_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o apollinaris_n blame_v for_o too_o much_o use_v it_o and_o the_o council_n at_o carthage_n forbid_v the_o use_n of_o the_o heathen_n book_n yet_o so_o many_o man_n must_v burn_v in_o hell_n for_o be_v no_o better_a logician_n or_o more_o metaphysical_a and_o all_o man_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n must_v be_v number_v with_o they_o that_o do_v not_o anathematise_v they_o and_o that_o million_o of_o ignorant_a man_n and_o woman_n in_o abassia_n syria_n armenia_n etc._n etc._n that_o know_v nothing_o of_o these_o matter_n nor_o ever_o hear_v of_o they_o to_o who_o they_o be_v as_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n must_v all_o be_v unchristened_a and_o damn_a as_o heretic_n yea_o for_o not_o own_v a_o council_n that_o most_o its_o like_a never_o hear_v of_o alas_o how_o few_o in_o england_n ireland_n or_o any_o country_n know_v what_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n do_v or_o ever_o hear_v it_o but_o yet_o all_o these_o heretic_n two_o or_o three_o part_n of_o the_o world_n have_v a_o easy_a way_n of_o recovery_n it_o be_v but_o to_o believe_v as_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n believe_v though_o they_o know_v not_o what_o and_o take_v he_o for_o their_o sovereign_n and_o they_o be_v safe_a but_o the_o final_a judgement_n be_v more_o just._n §_o 14._o pag._n 169._o he_o add_v the_o abassine_n confess_v themselves_o to_o follow_v eutyches_n and_o dioscorus_n and_o therefore_o there_o need_v neither_o trial_n nor_o conviction_n answ._n 1._o where_o be_v your_o proof_n that_o they_o so_o confess_v we_o will_v not_o confess_v that_o this_o be_v no_o slander_n 2._o alas_o how_o few_o of_o they_o know_v who_o eutyches_n and_o dioscorus_n be_v 3._o and_o of_o those_o that_o honour_n their_o name_n how_o few_o know_v what_o they_o hold_v 4._o your_o own_o writer_n acquit_v they_o of_o that_o heresy_n 5._o the_o truth_n be_v the_o tradition_n of_o their_o country_n teach_v they_o to_o honour_n dioscorus_n for_o his_o place_n sake_n but_o i_o can_v learn_v that_o the_o name_n of_o eutyches_n be_v know_v or_o honour_v much_o by_o they_o 6._o o_o that_o the_o papist_n have_v not_o more_o and_o great_a error_n than_o either_o nestorius_n or_o eutyches_n and_o that_o you_o condemn_v not_o yourselves_o in_o condemn_v the_o abassine_n §_o 15._o let_v the_o reader_n note_v that_o this_o man_n will_v first_o have_v we_o believe_v that_o the_o abassine_n and_o other_o who_o they_o call_v heretic_n be_v subject_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o of_o their_o church_n and_o yet_o that_o they_o be_v heretic_n and_o so_o that_o heretic_n be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o that_o they_o be_v part_n of_o their_o church_n his_o shameless_a call_n for_o proof_n that_o any_o of_o their_o writer_n acquit_v they_o from_o these_o heresy_n shall_v not_o tempt_v i_o to_o lose_v my_o time_n in_o cite_v they_o §_o 16._o next_o we_o come_v to_o his_o charge_n that_o the_o greek_a church_n reject_v we_o as_o well_o as_o they_o therefore_o the_o whole_a church_n reject_v we_o therefore_o we_o be_v to_o be_v reject_v heretic_n or_o else_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v deceive_v answ._n 1._o ib._n he_o that_o never_o read_v church-history_n may_v think_v that_o there_o be_v some_o signification_n in_o this_o cant_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o the_o universal_a church_n but_o so_o will_v not_o he_o that_o know_v how_o the_o prelate_n have_v usual_o turn_v to_o the_o strong_a side_n and_o that_o if_o the_o majority_n be_v the_o whole_a the_o whole_a church_n be_v orthodox_n in_o constantine_n day_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v arrian_n in_o the_o day_n of_o constantius_n and_o valens_n the_o whole_a church_n be_v eutychian_n in_o theodosius_n junior_n day_n and_o long_o monothelite_n and_o iconoclast_n etc._n etc._n 2._o if_o it_o prove_v man_n to_o be_v heretic_n or_o schismatic_n because_o the_o major_a part_n reject_v they_o than_o the_o orthodox_n be_v heretic_n when_o the_o foresay_a arrian_n reject_v they_o but_o you_o have_v be_v so_o long_o use_v to_o usurp_v christ_n chair_n that_o you_o seem_v to_o be_v grow_v to_o believe_v yourselves_o that_o a_o man_n be_v out_o of_o christ_n church_n if_o other_o man_n do_v but_o say_v that_o he_o be_v out_o as_o if_o you_o know_v not_o that_o the_o church_n be_v to_o put_v no_o man_n far_o from_o christ_n but_o only_o to_o declare_v how_o far_o from_o he_o they_o have_v put_v themselves_o and_o if_o any_o declare_v more_o than_o be_v true_a it_o do_v not_o separate_v the_o wrong_a person_n from_o christ._n e._n g._n i_o hear_v but_o yesterday_o divers_a person_n excommunicate_v some_o for_o teach_v school_n without_o licence_n and_o some_o for_o other_o such_o like_a thing_n do_v it_o follow_v that_o these_o be_v any_o further_a out_o of_o the_o church_n than_o they_o put_v themselves_o 3._o but_o tell_v we_o if_o you_o can_v when_o the_o greek_a church_n or_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n do_v presume_v to_o excommunicate_v we_o you_o will_v not_o tell_v we_o how_o then_o do_v their_o rejection_n signify_v that_o we_o be_v not_o of_o the_o same_o church_n the_o truth_n be_v the_o greek_a church_n never_o declare_v their_o mind_n concern_v we_o if_o you_o will_v call_v one_o man_n or_o twenty_o man_n the_o greek_a church_n you_o may_v use_v your_o liberty_n but_o we_o shall_v little_o regard_v it_o in_o the_o day_n of_o one_o patriarch_n cyril_n he_o declare_v for_o we_o and_o our_o reformation_n the_o papist_n in_o charity_n get_v he_o murder_v another_o jeremiah_n declare_v his_o dissent_n from_o we_o but_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o dissent_v from_o some_o thing_n and_o another_o thing_n to_o take_v man_n for_o none_o of_o the_o church_n if_o you_o will_v charge_v the_o greek_n to_o be_v such_o separatist_n as_o to_o unchurch_n or_o unchristen_v all_o that_o they_o in_o controvert_v point_n dissent_v from_o we_o will_v not_o believe_v you_o in_o so_o ugly_a a_o charge_n till_o you_o have_v prove_v it_o the_o greek_n disow_v we_o and_o we_o they_o in_o some_o lesser_a thing_n but_o neither_o they_o nor_o we_o presume_v to_o unchristen_v one_o another_o and_o if_o they_o or_o we_o do_v it_o will_v unchristen_v none_o of_o we_o unless_o we_o first_o unchristened_a ourselves_o 4._o but_o if_o the_o greek_n have_v the_o supreme_a authority_n as_o the_o virtual_a universal_a church_n than_o the_o papist_n have_v it_o not_o if_o the_o papist_n have_v it_o the_o greek_n have_v it_o not_o if_o neither_o have_v it_o who_o have_v it_o neither_o of_o you_o nor_o both_o be_v the_o real_a universal_a church_n and_o neither_o be_v virtual_o the_o universal_a therefore_o if_o both_o do_v excommunicate_v we_o we_o be_v not_o therefore_o excommunicate_a by_o the_o church_n universal_a 5._o but_o may_v the_o church_n universal_a err_v in_o excommunicate_v or_o not_o if_o
so_o than_o you_o have_v say_v nothing_o if_o not_o you_o take_v a_o general_n council_n to_o be_v indeed_o the_o church_n representative_a ●…nd_v then_o how_o many_o of_o your_o pope_n essential_a part_n of_o your_o church_n have_v be_v excommunicate_v and_o depose_v as_o heretic_n by_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o your_o church_n now_o be_v but_o the_o successor_n of_o e._n g._n eugenius_n the_o four_o so_o reject_v show_v we_o when_o ever_o the_o greek_n do_v so_o by_o our_o church_n or_o we_o §_o 17._o i_o tell_v he_o the_o greek_a church_n claim_v but_o the_o primacy_n or_o supremacy_n in_o the_o empire_n and_o not_o the_o government_n of_o all_o the_o world_n at_o this_o he_o first_o wonder_v and_o then_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o disprove_v it_o 1._o because_o else_o gregory_n the_o first_o have_v ill_o reprehend_v john_n of_o constant._n for_o claim_v the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n 2._o because_o jeremy_n say_v 1._o he_o be_v vice_n christi_n 2._o and_o persuade_v lucius_n etc._n etc._n to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o church_n with_o they_o answ._n 1._o it_o be_v the_o arrogancy_n of_o the_o title_n that_o gregory_n reprehend_v as_o sound_v like_o a_o real_a universal_a claim_n and_o the_o reality_n of_o a_o universal_a claim_n in_o the_o empire_n i_o prove_v before_o that_o the_o greek_n know_v that_o constant._n have_v no_o title_n jure_fw-la divine_a by_o the_o can._n 28_o of_o chalcedon_n and_o the_o notoriety_n of_o the_o thing_n and_o therefore_o they_o can_v not_o pretend_v it_o to_o be_v over_o all_o the_o world_n where_o the_o empire_n have_v no_o power_n and_o what_o need_v there_o more_o proof_n than_o that_o there_o be_v no_o evidence_n bring_v by_o you_o or_o any_o that_o ever_o they_o give_v law_n to_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n or_o that_o ever_o they_o call_v council_n out_o of_o it_o or_o that_o ever_o they_o set_v up_o and_o put_v down_o bishop_n in_o it_o indeed_o they_o have_v excommunicate_v roman_a pope_n but_o that_o be_v within_o the_o empire_n and_o so_o do_v alexandria_n or_o if_o since_o as_o they_o do_v still_o it_o be_v not_o as_o their_o governor_n but_o as_o any_o church_n may_v renounce_v communion_n with_o heretic_n or_o person_n uncapable_a of_o their_o communion_n 2._o and_o as_o for_o jeremy_n 1._o will_v not_o cyril_n as_o much_o prove_v the_o contrary_a 2._o be_v one_o man_n the_o greek_a church_n 3._o do_v every_o apostle_n or_o do_v every_o minister_n of_o christ_n proclaim_v himself_o universal_a head_n of_o the_o church_n when_o he_o say_v as_o 2_o cor._n 5._o 19_o we_o beseech_v you_o vice_n christi_n in_o christ_n stead_n to_o be_v reconcile_v to_o god_n it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o be_v preacher_n in_o christ_n stead_n to_o our_o particular_a flock_n and_o another_o thing_n to_o usurp_v christ_n proper_a office_n and_o be_v in_o his_o stead_n universal_a governor_n of_o the_o world_n 4._o and_o may_v not_o one_o of_o we_o or_o any_o christian_a persuade_v a_o man_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o if_o jeremias_n have_v a_o mind_n to_o rule_v further_o than_o the_o empire_n now_o the_o empire_n be_v mahome●…an_n and_o subject_n voluntary_a and_o free_a what_o wonder_n be_v it_o we_o undertake_v not_o to_o justify_v he_o from_o all_o ambition_n §_o 18._o i_o tell_v he_o out_o of_o his_o jeremias_n and_o his_o protonotary_n john_n zygomolas_n that_o they_o confess_v agreement_n with_o we_o in_o continuis_fw-la &_o causam_fw-la fidei_fw-la praecipuè_fw-la continentibus_fw-la articulis_fw-la and_o that_o quae_fw-la videntur_fw-la consensum_fw-la impedire_fw-la talia_fw-la sunt_fw-la si_fw-la velit_fw-la quis_fw-la ut_fw-la facilè_fw-la ●…a_fw-la corrig●…re_fw-la possit_fw-la he_o tell_v i_o that_o 1._o yet_o they_o consent_v with_o they_o in_o all_o save_o the_o pope_n authority_n answ._n 1._o how_o far_o that_o be_v from_o truth_n thom._n a_o jesu_n and_o other_o of_o your_o own_o will_v tell_v you_o 2._o and_o the_o pope_n authority_n be_v the_o ratio_fw-la formalis_fw-la of_o popery_n 2._o he_o say_v that_o jer._n claim_v as_o supreme_a authority_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o the_o pope_n do_v answ._n 1._o i_o will_v not_o believe_v it_o till_o i_o see_v the_o proof_n i_o find_v he_o lay_v all_o his_o claim_n from_o council_n and_o therefore_o may_v possible_o claim_v power_n over_o those_o church_n that_o be_v in_o the_o empire_n when_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n give_v that_o power_n but_o i_o find_v no_o more_o and_o if_o he_o do_v they_o and_o we_o may_v yet_o be_v christian_n 3._o he_o say_v any_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n may_v write_v the_o like_a to_o the_o lutheran_n but_o zygomalas_n suppose_v they_o of_o two_o church_n till_o unite_v answ._n he_o suppose_v they_o not_o in_o all_o thing_n of_o the_o same_o mind_n nor_o of_o the_o same_o particular_a church_n but_o he_o that_o say_v that_o we_o agree_v in_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o differ_v but_o in_o lesser_a thing_n of_o easy_a reconciliation_n either_o suppose_v both_o party_n to_o be_v christian_n and_o of_o one_o church_n of_o christ_n or_o else_o that_o no_o man_n be_v christian_n that_o have_v any_o difference_n that_o be_v no_o two_o explicit_a believer_n perhaps_o in_o the_o world_n §_o 19_o i_o tell_v he_o 1._o the_o patriarch_n be_v not_o the_o greek_a church_n nor_o 2._o their_o lesser_a error_n prove_v we_o of_o two_o religion_n or_o church_n he_o reply_v 1._o but_o he_o know_v the_o extent_n of_o his_o own_o jurisdiction_n answ._n 1._o so_o do_v not_o all_o ambitious_a man_n if_o he_o do_v than_o the_o papist_n be_v all_o deceive_v for_o he_o pretend_v say_v you_o a_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o church_n but_o the_o question_n between_o he_o and_o the_o protestant_n w●…_n not_o about_o his_o jurisdiction_n 2._o he_o say_v that_o if_o the_o error_n be_v tolerable_a we_o be_v schismatic_n in_o separate_v from_o they_o and_o shall_v rather_o have_v suffer_v answ._n to_o separate_v from_o any_o sin_n and_o error_n by_o not_o consent_v or_o commit_v it_o no_o christian_a deny_v to_o be_v our_o duty_n and_o his_o supposition_n that_o we_o separate_v from_o the_o catholic_n or_o the_o greek_a church_n be_v but_o his_o continue_a fiction_n we_o be_v not_o under_o the_o government_n of_o the_o greek_n and_o therefore_o not_o obey_v they_o be_v no_o separation_n and_o not_o sin_v with_o they_o be_v no_o separation_n we_o own_v they_o as_o christian_n and_o we_o renounce_v the_o sin_n of_o all_o the_o world_n and_o hate_v our_o own_o more_o than_o any_o other_o so_o far_o as_o we_o know_v they_o §_o 20._o to_o his_o say_n that_o it_o be_v against_o christianity_n to_o hold_v condemn_v heretic_n to_o be_v in_o the_o church_n i_o answer_v 1._o that_o i_o detest_v that_o condemnation_n when_o even_o non_fw-la judices_fw-la condemn_v whole_a nation_n without_o hear_v one_o man_n much-less_a all_o speak_v for_o themselves_o or_o any_o just_a witness_n that_o ever_o hear_v they_o defend_v a_o heresy_n his_o answer_n be_v that_o i_o mistake_v the_o way_n of_o their_o church_n condemnation_n they_o do_v but_o say_v whoever_o hold_v such_o error_n let_v he_o be_v accurse_v or_o we_o excommunicate_v such_o as_o hold_v they_o etc._n etc._n answ._n there_o be_v some_o hope_n leave_v then_o for_o the_o nation_n that_o be_v no_o subject_n of_o the_o pope_n unless_o non-subjection_n be_v the_o heresy_n but_o have_v the_o pope_n go_v no_o further_o than_o this_o have_v he_o not_o put_v whole_a nation_n under_o interdict_v but_o he_o say_v those_o that_o profess_v their_o heresy_n or_o that_o communicate_v with_o they_o be_v esteem_v heretic_n and_o those_o that_o profess_v to_o disbelieve_v their_o heresy_n and_o yet_o live_v in_o communion_n with_o they_o and_o subjection_n to_o they_o be_v schismatic_n answ._n 1._o here_o be_v new_a confound_a doctrine_n indeed_o if_o their_o canon_n only_o condemn_v indefinite_o those_o that_o hold_v a_o heresy_n e._n g._n nestorianism_n take_v it_o to_o be_v unfit_a to_o say_v god_n die_v or_o such_o god_n be_v bear_v must_v all_o be_v take_v for_o heretic_n that_o communicate_v with_o any_o of_o these_o before_o the_o person_n guilty_a be_v convict_v and_o judge_v must_v every_o private_a man_n be_v the_o judge_n of_o hi●…_n neighbour_n every_o servant_n of_o his_o master_n every_o woman_n of_o her_o husband_n every_o subject_n of_o the_o king_n and_o be_v burn_v for_o a_o heretic_n for_o communicate_v with_o one_o that_o be_v never_o accuse_v or_o condemn_v we_o live_v then_o with_o one_o another_o more_o dangerous_o than_o man_n converse_v in_o the_o time_n of_o pestilence_n nay_o what_o if_o the_o priest_n himself_o admit_v such_o to_o the_o communion_n must_v the_o poor_a people_n be_v burn_v if_o they_o communicate_v with_o they_o in_o the_o parish_n church_n
france_n and_o germany_n to_o which_o i_o say_v 1._o that_o none_o but_o rome_n much_o meddle_v in_o the_o empire_n after_o their_o conquest_n nor_o rome_n much_o in_o comparison_n of_o alexandria_n constantinople_n and_o antioch_n 2._o i_o easy_o confess_v that_o those_o church_n within_o the_o empire_n have_v be_v settle_v in_o their_o several_a power_n by_o the_o council_n at_o nice_a and_o const._n do_v plead_v the_o same_o canonical_a settlement_n to_o keep_v their_o possession_n when_o they_o be_v conquer_v and_o that_o e._n g._n rome_n under_o theodorick_n and_o other_o arrian_n be_v willing_a to_o keep_v their_o relation_n to_o the_o orthodox_n church_n of_o the_o empire_n for_o their_o strength_n and_o neighbour_n that_o be_v under_o heathen_n or_o arrian_n be_v glad_a of_o a_o little_a countenance_n from_o council_n of_o great_a bishop_n in_o the_o empire_n as_o basil_n and_o the_o easterne_n under_o valens_n be_v from_o the_o west_n without_o subjection_n to_o the_o pope_n §_o 33._o pag._n 116._o after_o some_o trifle_a quibble_n he_o answer_v my_o charge_n that_o their_o church_n be_v not_o one_o but_o two_o have_v at_o time_n two_o head_n the_o pope_n to_o some_o and_o a_o council_n to_o other_o to_o this_o he_o say_v 1._o that_o this_o belong_v to_o they_o that_o take_v council_n to_o be_v above_o the_o pope_n and_o not_o to_o he_o who_o be_v of_o a_o contrary_a opinion_n answ._n it_o be_v to_o your_o party_n in_o general_a i_o do_v not_o say_v that_o w._n i._o be_v two_o church_n but_o that_o those_o call_a papist_n be_v so_o 2._o he_o say_v that_o they_o also_o can_v answer_v i_o with_o a_o wet_a finger_n for_o the_o pope_n be_v in_o the_o council_n and_o not_o exclude_v answ._n such_o wet-fingerd_a answer_n serve_v to_o deceive_v the_o ignorant_a the_o question_n be_v not_o of_o the_o pope_n natural_a person_n but_o of_o his_o political_n two_o summa_fw-la potestates_fw-la make_v two_o polity_n the_o pope_n in_o a_o general_n council_n be_v not_o the_o summae_fw-la potestas_fw-la if_o a_o council_n be_v above_o he_o and_o may_v judge_v and_o depose_v he_o to_o be_v a_o member_n of_o a_o council_n that_o have_v the_o sovereignty_n be_v not_o to_o have_v the_o sovereignty_n do_v you_o not_o know_v this_o §_o 34._o i_o urge_v he_o as_o his_o proper_a work_n to_o answer_v these_o question_n whether_o the_o church_n of_o which_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v member_n have_v be_v visible_a ever_o since_o christ_n day_n on_o earth_n and_o therein_o 1._o whether_o the_o papacy_n that_o be_v their_o universal_a papal_a government_n over_o all_o the_o earth_n have_v so_o long_o continue_v 2._o whether_o all_o the_o catholic_n church_n do_v still_o submit_v to_o it_o 3._o whether_o those_o that_o do_v submit_v to_o it_o take_v it_o to_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o the_o church_n and_o man_n salvation_n or_o only_o to_o the_o more_o orderly_a and_o better_a be_v but_o he_o will_v not_o be_v drive_v to_o touch_v at_o any_o of_o these_o or_o prove_v the_o perpetual_a visibility_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d over_o my_o last_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d over_o many_o of_o his_o im●…_n 〈◊〉_d the_o 〈◊〉_d that_o i_o refer_v he_o but_o to_o the_o p●…sing_n of_o the_o history_n which_o 〈◊〉_d co●…th_v with_o the_o general_n answer_v which_o i_o have_v before_o give_v and_o he_o will_v find_v 1._o that_o the_o pope_n be_v but_o a_o national_a primate_n 2._o and_o that_o by_o humane_a institution_n 3._o and_o under_o a_o general_n council_n 4._o strive_v upon_o every_o advantage_n to_o be_v great_a 5._o under_o the_o power_n of_o prince_n 6._o and_o when_o he_o lose_v his_o power_n over_o all_o the_o other_o four_o patriarch_n the_o west_n fall_v from_o the_o empire_n he_o seek_v to_o bring_v the_o western_a prince_n under_o he_o and_o claim_v a_o government_n over_o all_o the_o world_n the_o three_o part_n a_o defence_n of_o my_o argument_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n of_o which_o the_o protestant_n be_v member_n have_v be_v visible_a ever_o since_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n on_o earth_n §_o 1._o i_o begin_v with_o a_o explication_n of_o the_o term_n but_o this_o disputer_n say_v that_o this_o be_v of_o no_o concern_v to_o his_o argument_n nor_o much_o to_o my_o answer_n answ._n it_o please_v not_o those_o that_o be_v all_o darkness_n such_o explication_n as_o you_o give_v i_o be_v indeed_o of_o little_a use._n 1._o he_o say_v i_o make_v believer_n and_o true_a christian_n synonyma_n whereas_o one_o may_v be_v a_o believer_n as_o a_o unbaptised_a catechumene_fw-la but_o be_v not_o a_o christian_n till_o baptize_v answ._n as_o a_o pope_n once_o tell_v one_o how_o little_a wit_n in_o a_o place_n of_o power_n will_v serve_v to_o govern_v the_o world_n so_o i_o see_v by_o this_o man_n how_o little_a reason_n will_v serve_v to_o set_v up_o a_o jesuite_n for_o a_o ●…nanswerable_a disputant_n among_o the_o ignorant_a the_o word_n christian_n as_o well_o as_o believer_n signify_v 1._o a_o heart-consenter_n to_o the_o baptismal_a covenant_n 2._o or_o a_o professor_n of_o that_o consent_n and_o 1._o regular_o by_o baptism_n 2._o or_o without_o it_o when_o it_o can_v be_v ●…ad_a 1._o as_o soon_o as_o a_o man_n believe_v and_o consent_v he_o be_v a_o christian_n before_o god_n 2._o as_o soon_o as_o he_o solemn_o profess_v it_o he_o be_v a_o incomplete_a christian_a before_o man_n 3._o as_o soon_o as_o he_o profess_v it_o in_o baptism_n he_o be_v orderly_a and_o regular_o a_o christian_n before_o the_o church_n even_o as_o two_o secret_o ma●…rying_v be_v marry_v before_o god_n and_o when_o they_o publish_v their_o mutual_a consent_n and_o covenant_n as_o suppose_v it_o be_v where_o a_o priest_n be_v not_o to_o be_v have_v they_o be_v irregular_o marry_v before_o man_n but_o solemn_a matrimony_n make_v it_o a_o legal_a marriage_n in_o fore_n and_o this_o distinction_n hold_v of_o the_o word_n beleiver_n as_o well_o as_o of_o christian_n a_o beleiver_n a_o disciple_n and_o a_o christian_a be_v synonyma_n before_o popery_n be_v bear_v §_o 2._o next_o he_o say_v that_o my_o word_n subject_a to_o christ_n their_o head_n be_v equivocal_a because_o subject_n may_v signify_v but_o inferior_a and_o head_n but_o a_o principal_a member_n answ._n what_o be_v not_o equivocal_a to_o a_o jesuit_n 1._o do_v i_o not_o put_v this_o first_o the_o church_n be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 2._o when_o i_o say_v it_o be_v the_o whole_a company_n of_o believer_n subject_a to_o christ_n their_o head_n be_v not_o the_o word_n significative_a enough_o of_o a_o govern_v head_n and_o do_v i_o not_o add_v the_o constitutive_a part_n be_v christ_n and_o christian_n as_o the_o pars_fw-la imperans_fw-la &_o subdita_fw-la be_v there_o more_o notify_v word_n in_o use_n if_o there_o be_v tell'them_fw-mi i_o if_o you_o can_v or_o be_v not_o this_o a_o cavil_n that_o have_v more_o of_o will_n and_o interest_n than_o of_o conscience_n §_o 3._o i_o say_v protestant_n be_v christian_n protest_v against_o and_o disallow_v popery_n to_o this_o he_o cavil_v 1._o that_o the_o name_n have_v another_o original_n 2._o that_o the_o greek_n arrian_n antitrinitarian_n socinian_n hussites_n anabaptist_n familist_n millenaries_n quaker_n be_v not_o protestant_n answ._n 1._o do_v i_o undertake_v to_o tell_v you_o the_o first_o rise_v of_o the_o name_n or_o only_o to_o tell_v who_o i_o mean_v in_o my_o dispute_n if_o i_o have_v the_o german_a protestation_n immediate_o against_o a_o particular_a edict_n be_v principal_o and_o final_o against_o popery_n and_o in_o that_o sense_n be_v the_o name_n continue_v but_o it_o be_v not_o the_o name_n but_o the_o church_n and_o religion_n that_o i_o dispute_v of_o you_o know_v that_o the_o name_v reform_v catholic_n christians_o please_v we_o better_o than_o the_o name_n of_o protestant_n be_v not_o christian_n after_o they_o be_v first_o call_v so_o at_o antioch_n of_o the_o same_o religion_n as_o before_o when_o they_o be_v call_v but_o disciple_n and_o believer_n yea_o and_o nazarens_fw-la by_o their_o adversary_n 2._o who_o will_v have_v think_v that_o you_o have_v take_v arrian_n antitrinitarian_n socinian_n or_o any_o that_o deny_v a_o essential_a part_n of_o christianity_n for_o true_a christian_n do_v you_o not_o here_o oft_o profess_v the_o contrary_a and_o those_o that_o be_v no_o christian_n be_v not_o in_o my_o definition_n those_o that_o be_v christian_n as_o greek_n millenaries_n and_o hussites_n and_o most_o anabaptist_n with_o we_o be_v protestant_n but_o not_o mere_a protestant_n they_o have_v somewh●…t_v more_o and_o worse_o which_o give_v they_o another_o name_n but_o if_o christian_n protest_v against_o popery_n they_o be_v of_o the_o same_o church_n universal_a as_o we_o be_v §_o 4._o when_o i_o call_v popery_n
the_o leprosy_n of_o some_o christian_n he_o must_v know_v whether_o all_o the_o church_n be_v not_o leprous_a then_o 2._o and_o whether_o man_n can_v with_o a_o safe_a conscience_n have_v communion_n with_o any_o answ._n 1._o he_o that_o say_v he_o have_v no_o sin_n be_v alyar_n say_v st._n john_n all_o christian_n and_o therefore_o all_o church_n be_v defile_v with_o sin_n 2._o all_o be_v not_o equal_o defile_v i_o have_v tell_v you_o that_o the_o papist_n be_v not_o the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o for_o many_o hundred_o year_n there_o be_v none_o 3._o we_o must_v not_o separate_v from_o all_o church_n that_o have_v sin_n but_o we_o must_v not_o wilful_o sin_n for_o their_o communion_n and_o we_o must_v join_v local_o with_o the_o best_a we_o can_v and_o in_o spirit_n join_v with_o all_o as_o far_o as_o they_o join_v with_o christ_n be_v not_o this_o plain_a and_o sufficient_a to_o your_o cavil_v §_o 5._o he_o say_v p._n 423._o that_o our_o external_a profession_n in_o the_o particular_n of_o our_o belief_n or_o rather_o disbelief_n against_o the_o roman_a church_n show_v our_o general_a profession_n of_o christianity_n to_o be_v false_a as_o the_o arrian_n be_v answ._n what_o be_v easy_a than_o to_o say_v so_o but_o where_o be_v your_o proof_n §_o 6._o after_o a_o repetition_n of_o his_o talk_n against_o christ_n as_o no_o visible_a head_n he_o cavil_v at_o the_o form_n of_o my_o first_o argument_n which_o be_v this_o the_o body_n of_o christian_n on_o earth_n subject_v to_o christ_n their_o head_n have_v be_v in_o its_o part_n visible_a ever_o since_o the_o day_n of_o christ_n on_o earth_n but_o the_o body_n of_o christian_n on_o earth_n subject_v to_o christ_n their_o head_n be_v the_o church_n of_o which_o the_o protestant_n be_v member_n therefore_o the_o church_n of_o which_o the_o protestant_n be_v member_n have_v be_v visible_a ever_o since_o th●…_n day_n of_o christ_n on_o earth_n and_o first_o he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v out_o of_o form_n because_o it_o have_v never_o a_o universal_a proposition_n answ._n this_o be_v the_o man_n that_o will_v not_o dispute_v but_o in_o mere_a syllogism_n what_o need_v i_o a_o universal_a proposition_n if_o you_o be_v to_o prove_v that_o cephas_n be_v peter_n or_o peter_n be_v a_o apostle_n of_o the_o first_o place_n must_v you_o have_v a_o universal_a proposition_n what_o universal_a must_v there_o be_v above_o the_o body_n of_o christian_n etc._n etc._n 2._o he_o say_v that_o the_o word_n those_o form_n require_v shall_v have_v be_v all_o those_o when_o as_o there_o be_v never_o a_o those_o at_o all_o in_o the_o argument_n be_v not_o this_o a_o accurate_a reformer_n of_o syllogism_n that_o amend_v term_n that_o be_v not_o write_v and_o talk_v like_o a_o dreamer_n of_o he_o know_v not_o what_o but_o what_o be_v the_o all_n that_o the_o man_n will_v have_v have_v be_v it_o all_o those_o body_n of_o christian_n when_o we_o be_v all_o agree_v that_o christ_n have_v but_o one_o political_a body_n if_o i_o have_v be_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o world_n that_o protestant_n be_v part_n of_o have_v be_v visible_a since_o adam_n or_o that_o the_o god_n the_o protestant_n worship_n be_v almighty_a must_v i_o have_v say_v all_o those_o world_n and_o all_o those_o god_n nay_o have_v i_o say_v but_o whatsoever_o world_n or_o whatsoever_o god_n it_o have_v sound_v ill_o among_o man_n that_o be_v agree_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o sure_o a_o expository_n medium_n that_o be_v but_o notius_fw-la be_v enough_o next_o he_o say_v that_o i_o put_v more_o in_o the_o medium_n of_o the_o major_a than_o in_o the_o medium_n of_o the_o minor_a and_o so_o it_o have_v four_o term_n answ._n wonderful_a this_o be_v the_o man_n that_o dispute_v with_o our_o two_o great_a logician_n and_o public_a professor_n of_o cambridge_n bishop_n gunning_n and_o bishop_n peirson_n and_o as_o a_o triumpher_n print_v the_o dispute_n and_o challenge_v man_n in_o london_n to_o syllogistical_a combat_n and_o now_o see_v how_o he_o talk_v 1._o he_o call_v that_o my_o medium_n that_o be_v no_o medium_n at_o all_o but_o the_o predicate_a 2._o he_o say_v it_o be_v not_o in_o my_o minor_n where_o that_o predicate_v be_v not_o nor_o aught_o to_o be_v but_o another_o 3._o he_o take_v a_o expository_n parenthesis_n which_o be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o proposition_n for_o a_o addition_n that_o make_v ●…our_n term_n when_o i_o prove_v the_o church_n visible_a to_o prevent_v his_o cavil_n i_o put_v in_o a_o parenthesis_n as_o a_o margin_n in_o its_o part_n because_o the_o whole_a world_n or_o church_n be_v not_o see_v by_o any_o mortal_a man_n no_o not_o by_o the_o pope_n that_o pretend_v to_o rule_v it_o all_o and_o this_o no_o man_n controvert_v if_o he_o have_v say_v that_o there_o be_v less_o in_o the_o conclusion_n than_o in_o the_o premise_n he_o have_v speak_v sense_n though_o impertinet_fw-la while_o there_o be_v as_o much_o as_o be_v in_o the_o question_n 2_o he_o say_v i_o make_v the_o predicate_a of_o the_o minor_a the_o subject_n of_o the_o conclusion_n and_o then_o say_v this_n be_v a_o hopeful_a beginning_n answ._n o_o rare_a triumphant_a disputer_n why_o shall_v i_o not_o make_v the_o predicate_a of_o the_o minor_a the_o subject_n of_o the_o conclusion_n what_o law_n or_o reason_n be_v against_o it_o when_o i●…_n be_v the_o subject_n of_o the_o question_n my_o argument_n be_v a_o re_fw-mi definitâ_fw-la ad_fw-la rem_fw-la denominatam_fw-la as_o question_v the_o definition_n or_o res_fw-la quà_fw-la definita_fw-la be_v my_o medium_n how_o ridiculo●…s_n have_v this_o aristarchus_n make_v himself_o in_o his_o logic_n will_v not_o this_o dispute_v have_v be_v very_o edify_v to_o such_o as_o the_o lady_n that_o he_o and_o i_o be_v once_o to_o deal_v with_o when_o he_o will_v have_v bargain_v that_o never_o a_o word_n shall_v be_v speak_v by_o i_o nor_o write_v but_o in_o a_o syllogism_n as_o bad_a as_o popery_n be_v i_o hope_v it_o have_v some_o man_n of_o more_o ingenuity_n and_o honesty_n then_o wilful_o to_o delude_v the_o ignorant_a at_o these_o low_a and_o sordid_a rate_n §_o 7._o but_o from_o his_o play_n he_o turn_v in_o earnest_a to_o deny_v my_o major_n and_o say_v that_o protestant_n be_v no_o part_n of_o that_o church_n on_o earth_n of_o which_o christ_n be_v head_n and_o yet_o many_o of_o their_o doctor_n say_v that_o they_o that_o have_v no_o explicit_a belief_n that_o jesus_n be_v the_o christ_n but_o believe_v only_o a_o god_n the_o rewarder_n of_o work_n be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n but_o no_o christian_n be_v save_v papist_n just_o the_o donatist_n and_o worse_o than_o the_o quaker_n and_o anabaptist_n my_o argument_n those_o that_o profess_v the_o true_a christian_a religion_n in_o all_o its_o essential_o be_v member_n of_o that_o church_n which_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christian_n on_o earth_n subject_v to_o christ_n the_o head_n but_o protestant_n profess_v etc._n etc._n here_o 1._o he_o want_v form_n also_o all_n be_v want_v as_o if_o a_o definition_n be_v not_o universal_a or_o equipollent_a but_o if_o all_n be_v in_o he_o deny_v it_o because_o they_o may_v destroy_v the_o faith_n by_o a_o error_n answ._n he_o that_o so_o err_v as_o to_o deny_v any_o one_o essential_a part_n do_v not_o true_o profess_v to_o hold_v that_o essential_a part_n and_o so_o not_o the_o essence_n as_o he_o that_o deny_v christ_n to_o be_v god_n or_o man_n and_o yet_o will_v say_v in_o general_n that_o he_o be_v the_o messiah_n his_o meaning_n be_v that_o one_o that_o be_v not_o god_n or_o not_o man_n be_v the_o messiah_n which_o be_v not_o a_o profession_n of_o all_o essential_a to_o christianity_n but_o if_o he_o true_o profess_v all_o that_o be_v essential_a and_o ignorant_o think_v some_o error_n consistent_a with_o those_o essential_o which_o by_o consequence_n cross_v some_o of_o they_o and_o will_v abhor_v that_o error_n if_o he_o know_v it_o inconsistent_a this_o man_n be_v still_o a_o christian_n or_o else_o it_o be_v doubt_n whether_o there_o be_v one_o in_o the_o world_n if_o those_o doctor_n say_v true_a that_o say_v that_o theology_n be_v so_o harmonious_a a_o frame_n that_o the_o least_o moral_a error_n do_v by_o consequence_n cross_a and_o subvert_v fundamental_a truth_n certain_o abundance_n of_o such_o do_v so_o as_o be_v collect_v by_o montaltus_n and_o mr._n clarkson_n out_o of_o your_o jesuit_n and_o school_v doctor_n and_o as_o you_o find_v in_o one_o another_o but_o he_o bid_v i_o prove_v my_o major_n mark_v reader_n what_o i_o be_o put_v to_o prove_v 1._o either_o that_o profession_n denominate_v a_o professor_n it_o be_v only_a christian_n as_o visible_a by_o profession_n in_o question_n 2._o or_o that_o all_o the_o essential_a part_n do_v
bind_v or_o how_o can_v i_o be_v say_v to_o believe_v implicit_o their_o unknown_a doctrine_n or_o article_n of_o faith_n what_o be_v my_o implicit_a belief_n of_o scripture-particle_n but_o my_o general_n belief_n that_o all_o the_o scripture_n be_v god_n word_n and_o true_a and_o what_o be_v implicit_a belief_n of_o popish_a tradition_n in_o particular_a but_o the_o explicit_a belief_n that_o all_o popish_a tradition_n in_o general_n be_v true_a if_o therefore_o these_o disputer_n confess_v the_o sufficiency_n of_o our_o explicit_a neccessary_a belief_n and_o yet_o damn_v we_o for_o the_o insufficiency_n of_o our_o implicit_a belief_n they_o shameful_o contradict_v themselves_o and_o give_v up_o their_o cause_n §_o 14._o next_o i_o thus_o argue_v if_o sincere_a protestant_n be_v member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n as_o intrinsical_o inform_v or_o as_o bellarmine_n speak_v live_v member_n then_o profess_a protestant_n be_v member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n as_o extrinsecal_o denominate_v or_o as_o it_o be_v visible_a consist_v of_o professor_n but_o the_o antecedent_n be_v true_a ergo_fw-la so_o be_v the_o consequent_a to_o this_o when_o i_o have_v give_v the_o reason_n of_o the_o consequence_n undeniable_a and_o say_v i_o prove_v the_o antecedent_n or_o minor_a he_o say_v you_o prove_v say_v you_o your_o antecedent_n or_o minor_a which_o be_v a_o syntax_n in_o logic_n and_o deserve_v a_o ferula_fw-la for_o no_o minor_a can_v be_v a_o antecedent_n answ._n for_o this_o man_n sake_n i_o will_v know_v a_o man_n better_o than_o by_o his_o hector_n before_o i_o will_v go_v to_o school_n to_o a_o boaster_n reader_n 1._o what_o be_v that_o error_n in_o logic_n that_o be_v call_v a_o syntax_n i_o think_v order_n or_o concord_n have_v be_v no_o error_n i_o confess_v myself_o not_o wise_a enough_o to_o understand_v this_o great_a logician_n and_o his_o ferula_fw-la be_v too_o ready_a which_o must_v be_v use_v for_o syntax_n when_o it_o be_v more_o use_v for_o violation_n of_o syntax_n 2._o risum_fw-la teneatis_fw-la can_v no_o antecedent_n be_v a_o minor_a so_o do_v dr._n peter_n heylin_n tell_v i_o before_o he_o in_o his_o certamen_fw-la epistolare_fw-la i_o suppose_v i_o shall_v never_o hear_v a_o three_o say_v so_o what_o be_v the_o matter_n that_o the_o boy_n laugh_v at_o this_o and_o say_v that_o to_o deny_v the_o antecedent_n of_o a_o hypothetical_a proposition_n and_o to_o deny_v the_o minor_a be_v all_o one_o be_v it_o that_o boy_n have_v make_v all_o our_o usual_a logick_n and_o now_o these_o two_o logic_n doctor_n have_v reform_v they_o or_o have_v this_o man_n pretend_v to_o be_v a_o champion_n in_o that_o art_n in_o which_o he_o be_v below_o the_o novice_n he_o have_v hit_v it_o if_o he_o have_v hold_v to_o his_o offer_n to_o dispute_v before_o a_o lady_n a_o girl_n only_o in_o syllogism_n by_o the_o pen_n for_o this_o with_o she_o may_v have_v pass_v for_o currant_n and_o invincible_a logic_n §_o 15._o i_o prove_v the_o minor_a thus_o all_o that_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n be_v bring_v to_o the_o unfeigned_a love_n of_o god_n above_o all_o and_o special_a love_n of_o his_o servant_n and_o unfeigned_a willingness_n to_o obey_v he_o be_v member_n of_o the_o true_a church_n as_o intrinsical_o inform_v but_o such_o be_v all_o sincere_a protestant_n etc._n etc._n this_o minor_a the_o man_n deny_v and_o say_v that_o protestant_n have_v not_o these_o thing_n answ._n 1._o mark_v how_o hard_o this_o man_n be_v put_v to_o it_o to_o renounce_v his_o charity_n he_o can_v do_v it_o without_o deny_v what_o he_o grant_v a_o sincere_a professor_n of_o any_o religion_n be_v one_o that_o real_o be_v what_o he_o profess_v to_o be_v he_o deny_v not_o that_o protestant_n profess_v to_o love_n god_n etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o he_o deny_v the_o minor_a that_o sincere_a protestant_n do_v love_n god_n as_o if_o he_o that_o sincere_o profess_v to_o love_n god_n do_v not_o love_v he_o these_o be_v papist_n syllogism_n 2._o note_v that_o this_o man_n seem_v to_o know_v all_o protestant_n heart_n better_o than_o they_o do_v themselves_o and_o can_v prove_v they_o all_o hypocrite_n that_o love_v not_o god_n 3._o but_o by_o this_o you_o see_v how_o he_o reproach_v all_o those_o protestant_n that_o turn_v papist_n as_o have_v all_o be_v but_o before_o but_o graceless_a ungodly_a hypocrite_n and_o what_o wonder_v then_o if_o they_o turn_v 4._o but_o it_o may_v be_v his_o word_n formal_o be_v a_o cheat_n a_o protestant_n be_v a_o christian_a renounce_v popery_n it_o be_v his_o christianity_n which_o contain_v his_o love_n to_o god_n his_o renounce_v popery_n be_v but_o his_o freedom_n from_o their_o sin_n and_o perhaps_o the_o man_n have_v a_o mind_n to_o call_v this_o the_o form_n of_o protestant_n but_o i_o hope_v his_o talk_n shall_v not_o deprive_v we_o of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n or_o of_o our_o neighbour_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n any_o man_n that_o can_v true_o say_v that_o he_o be_v not_o a_o ungodly_a hypocrite_n without_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o man_n have_v argument_n enough_o to_o answer_v any_o papist_n in_o himself_n 5._o again_o reader_n mark_v how_o much_o these_o man_n magnify_v themselves_o and_o how_o much_o they_o vilify_v the_o word_n and_o work_n of_o god_n let_v a_o man_n see_v all_o god_n wonderful_a goodness_n in_o his_o work_n and_o in_o his_o mercy_n to_o himself_o and_o all_o mankind_n let_v he_o read_v and_o believe_v all_o the_o wonderful_a love_n of_o the_o father_n and_o grace_n of_o the_o son_n that_o be_v describe_v in_o all_o the_o scripture_n let_v he_o believe_v the_o promise_n there_o record_v of_o everlasting_a glory_n and_o all_o this_o be_v insufficient_a to_o cause_v he_o save_o to_o love_n god_n or_o man_n but_o let_v he_o but_o add_v the_o belief_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o governor_n of_o all_o the_o earth_n and_o that_o he_o and_o his_o council_n must_v be_v believe_v in_o all_o their_o tradition_n and_o exposition_n and_o then_o the_o work_n will_v be_v do_v and_o he_o may_v love_n god_n unseigned_o and_o be_v love_v by_o he_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v not_o work_v by_o the_o scripture_n unless_o we_o take_v the_o pope_n for_o the_o expositor_n yea_o more_o if_o a_o man_n never_o hear_v of_o scripture_n or_o if_o he_o believe_v not_o in_o christ_n for_o want_v of_o the_o pope_n sufficient_a proposal_n he_o may_v love_n god_n and_o be_v save_v so_o he_o do_v but_o believe_v that_o the_o pope_n with_o his_o council_n be_v a_o sufficient_a proposer_n and_o be_v there_o any_o account_n in_o reason_n to_o be_v give_v of_o this_o strange_a phaenomenon_n why_o a_o man_n can_v love_n god_n if_o he_o believe_v in_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o yet_o can_v love_v he_o by_o all_o his_o work_n and_o mercy_n with_o the_o belief_n of_o all_o the_o scripture_n or_o be_v it_o as_o very_o a_o miracle_n as_o transubstantiation_n and_o sanctification_n by_o holy-water_n or_o the_o opus_fw-la operatum_fw-la and_o one_o of_o those_o miracle_n that_o prove_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v all_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n §_o 16._o but_o he_o repeat_v again_o the_o threadbare_a reason_n have_v they_o this_o they_o will_v never_o have_v disobey_v and_o disbelieved_a all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n answ._n that_o be_v the_o pope_n and_o his_o priest_n who_o be_v against_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o yearly_o anathematise_v by_o the_o greek_n who_o when_o they_o have_v lose_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o eastern_a part_n of_o one_o empire_n have_v try_v to_o make_v up_o the_o loss_n by_o lay_v claim_n to_o all_o the_o earth_n o_o of_o what_o consequence_n be_v obedience_n to_o a_o ambitious_a pope_n or_o priest_n in_o comparison_n of_o obedience_n to_o all_o the_o write_v law_n of_o god_n §_o 17._o i_o prove_v the_o minor_a two_o way_n 1._o if_o this_o the_o love_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n be_v in_o our_o profession_n than_o the_o sincere_a be_v such_o indeed_o but_o this_o be_v in_o our_o profession_n ergo_fw-la of_o this_o he_o deny_v the_o minor_a it_o be_v not_o in_o our_o profession_n what_o not_o that_o we_o love_v god_n and_o be_v willing_a to_o understand_v and_o obey_v his_o word_n be_v he_o not_o drive_v up_o to_o the_o wall_n even_o to_o another_o denial_n of_o all_o man_n eye_n and_o ear_n do_v not_o i_o profess_v it_o while_o i_o write_v these_o word_n and_o have_v not_o i_o profess_v it_o in_o sixty_o volume_n and_o more_o and_o do_v not_o protestant_a library_n contain_v such_o profession_n and_o their_o pulpit_n ring_v of_o they_o every_o lord_n day_n what_o be_v a_o profession_n but_o word_n and_o write_n and_o be_v not_o these_o audible_a and_o visible_a to_o the_o world_n and_o yet_o the_o deny_v not_o of_o the_o
cause_n which_o they_o do_v not_o §_o 28._o my_o 3d._a proof_n be_v this_o the_o tradition_n witness_v by_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n say_v that_o the_o papal_a vicarship_n or_o sovereignty_n be_v a_o innovation_n and_o usurpation_n and_o that_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v many_o hundred_o year_n without_o it_o therefore_o there_o be_v then_o no_o such_o papat_fw-la church_n here_o the_o man_n be_v angry_a and_o say_v it_o be_v a_o abominable_a untruth_n set_v down_o by_o a_o forehead_n of_o brass_n a_o man_n in_o his_o right_a wit_n will_v not_o have_v the_o confidence_n to_o utter_v so_o loud_a a_o falsehood_n and_o all_o the_o world_n will_v see_v that_o i_o be_o one_o of_o the_o most_o unsufferabl_a out-facers_a of_o truth_n and_o asserter_n of_o open_a falsehood_n that_o ever_o set_a pen_n to_o paper_n yea_o it_o bring_v in_o the_o talk_n of_o rebellion_n against_o his_o majesty_n etc._n etc._n answ._n the_o apprehension_n of_o man_n be_v very_o different_a when_o read_v its_o like_a the_o same_o book_n leave_v i_o past_a doubt_n on_o one_o side_n and_o he_o so_o vehement_o confident_a on_o the_o other_o my_o proof_n be_v this_o 1._o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n do_v now_o deny_v the_o papal_a universal_a sovereignty_n 2._o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n do_v suppose_v and_o say_v that_o they_o hold_v herein_o to_o the_o ancient_a truth_n which_o be_v deliver_v down_o from_o the_o apostle_n 3._o therefore_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n do_v hold_v that_o the_o ancient_a truth_n deliver_v from_o the_o apostle_n do_v teach_v they_o to_o deny_v the_o pope_n universal_a sovereignty_n and_o consequent_o that_o it_o be_v a_o innovation_n and_o usurpation_n i._o as_o to_o the_o first_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o present_a fact_n such_o as_o whether_o most_o of_o england_n speak_v english_a 1._o that_o the_o great_a empire_n of_o abassia_n renounce_v the_o pope_n and_o plead_v tradition_n for_o it_o godignus_n the_o jesuit_n beside_o other_o full_o testify_v and_o justify_v pet._n maffeius_n ribade_n nica_n and_o other_o jesuit_n against_o 〈◊〉_d new_a author_n that_o false_o say_v they_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o they_o take_v the_o roman_n for_o nestorian_a heretic_n p._n 318._o 328._o etc._n etc._n and_o that_o they_o resolve_v never_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n that_o he_o that_o tell_v they_o otherwise_o misinform_v they_o yea_o say_v one_o of_o the_o jesuit_n pag._n 330._o i_o think_v the_o emperor_n have_v rather_o be_v under_o the_o hard_a yoke_n of_o the_o saracen_n than_o under_o the_o mild_a and_o gentle_a empire_n emperor_n of_o the_o roman_a pope_n it_o be_v true_a that_o many_o error_n they_o have_v and_o many_o more_o be_v charge_v on_o they_o which_o they_o deny_v and_o believe_v that_o dioscorus_n be_v the_o true_a follower_n of_o cyril_n and_o the_o council_n of_o ephes._n and_o that_o leo_n and_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n be_v nestorian_n of_o which_o more_o anon_o they_o be_v for_o dioscorus_n against_o leo_n and_o the_o council_n but_o few_o if_o any_o of_o they_o understand_v the_o bottom_n of_o that_o controversy_n and_o the_o emperor_n tell_v the_o jesuit_n that_o he_o false_o charge_v error_n on_o they_o and_o his_o mother_n say_v see_v your_o faith_n and_o we_o do_v nothing_o differ_v but_o be_v the_o same_o why_o do_v you_o write_v to_o trouble_v quiet_a mind_n without_o cause_n the_o jesuit_n answer_v i_o certain_o affirm_v to_o your_o majesty_n that_o if_o you_o have_v no_o other_o error_n this_o one_o that_o you_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n on_o earth_n be_v enough_o and_o too_o much_o to_o your_o everlasting_a destruction_n ii_o to_o this_o she_o reply_v that_o she_o and_o her_o country_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o apostle_n peter_n and_o paul_n and_o first_o to_o christ_n himself_o the_o jesuit_n answer_v i_o deny_v that_o they_o be_v subject_a to_o christ_n that_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o his_o vicar_n say_v she_o neither_o i_o nor_o i_o deny_v obedience_n to_o st._n peter_n we_o be_v now_o in_o the_o same_o faith_n that_o we_o be_v in_o from_o the_o beginning_n if_o that_o be_v not_o right_a why_o for_o so_o many_o age_n and_o generation_n be_v there_o no_o man_n find_v that_o will_v warn_v we_o of_o our_o error_n he_o answer_v the_o pope_n of_o rome_n that_o be_v the_o pastor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o christ_n can_v not_o in_o the_o year_n pass_v send_v tea●…hers_n into_o abassia_n &c_n &c_n she_o answer_v to_o change_v the_o old_a custom_n and_o rite_n and_o receive_v new_a one_o be_v a_o matter_n full_a of_o danger_n and_o offence_n he_o answer_v that_o their_o faith_n be_v old_a and_o have_v nothing_o new_a etc._n etc._n p._n 323_o 324_o 325._o the_o emperor_n also_o speak_v to_o the_o like_a purpose_n p._n 319._o 320_o 321._o so_o that_o it_o be_v confess_v by_o the_o jesuit_n and_o best_a information_n from_o abassia_n 1._o that_o they_o abhor_v or_o refuse_v the_o papal_a government_n 2._o and_o that_o for_o this_o they_o plead_v tradition_n and_o antiquity_n and_o the_o same_o be_v notorious_a of_o the_o greek_a armenian_a and_o other_o oriental_a church_n how_o large_a they_o be_v in_o the_o east_n when_o jacobus_n de_fw-fr vitriaco_n be_v there_o i_o have_v former_o show_v out_o of_o his_o word_n who_o say_v that_o those_o eastern_a christian_n be_v more_o than_o either_o the_o greek_a or_o latin_a church_n and_o as_o the_o greek_n anathematise_v the_o pope_n every_o year_n so_o the_o rest_n be_v know_v to_o reject_v he_o to_o say_v that_o these_o be_v heretic_n and_o not_o the_o church_n be_v but_o to_o beg_v the_o question_n and_o fit_a for_o contempt_n than_o a_o answer_n that_o all_o such_o rejecter_n of_o the_o papacy_n be_v the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o profess_a christian_n be_v past_a doubt_n 2._o and_o that_o greek_n armenian_n etc._n etc._n plead_v tradition_n and_o the_o judgement_n and_o custom_n of_o their_o forefather_n for_o what_o they_o hold_v be_v so_o far_o past_a question_n that_o i_o will_v not_o vain_o waste_v time_n in_o cite_v author_n to_o prove_v it_o even_o the_o papist_n confess_v it_o when_o they_o tell_v we_o that_o these_o church_n join_v with_o they_o in_o plead_v for_o tradition_n be_v not_o then_o the_o consequence_n clear_a which_o w._n 1_n be_v so_o angry_a at_o i_o know_v not_o what_o can_v be_v say_v against_o it_o unless_o that_o both_o the_o greek_n and_o protestant_n do_v confess_v that_o once_o they_o be_v under_o the_o pope_n but_o the_o greek_n say_v that_o they_o be_v never_o under_o he_o as_o a_o governor_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n set_v up_o by_o god_n but_o as_o the_o primate_n of_o one_o empire_n set_v up_o by_o man_n upon_o such_o reason_n the_o seat_n of_o the_o empire_n as_o be_v alterable_a as_o well_o as_o unnecessary_a i_o have_v prove_v this_o full_o before_o 1._o from_o the_o word_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n 2._o from_o their_o equal_v and_o after_o prefer_v the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n who_o pretend_v not_o to_o a_o divine_a right_n and_o that_o as_o over_o all_o the_o world_n and_o they_o be_v not_o so_o blind_a as_o to_o set_v up_o a_o humane_a law_n above_o that_o which_o they_o believe_v to_o be_v divine_a many_o other_o proof_n i_o give_v and_o even_o the_o protestant_n hold_v that_o in_o reject_v the_o papacy_n they_o follow_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n however_o some_o country_n where_o they_o live_v and_o their_o progenitor_n fall_v under_o the_o papal_a error_n or_o terror_n there_o be_v some_o late_a papist_n that_o think_v that_o what_o be_v hold_v in_o this_o age_n be_v certain_o hold_v in_o the_o former_a and_o that_o no_o country_n tradition_n can_v be_v false_a which_o be_v contrary_a to_o all_o experience_n but_o if_o other_o country_n tradition_n may_v be_v false_a so_o may_v the_o roman_a niceph._n say_v of_o the_o armenian_n they_o do_v these_o thing_n from_o tradition_n which_o rest_v on_o no_o reason_n and_o their_o ancient_a legislator_n and_o doctor_n do_v calumnious_o boast_v that_o gregory_n the_o bishop_n of_o great_a armenia_n deliver_v they_o by_o hand_n &c_n &c_n l._n 18._o c._n 54._o and_o the_o abassian_o that_o receive_v the_o gospel_n from_o the_o eunuch_n and_o st._n matthew_n be_v before_o too_o much_o addict_v to_o some_o jewish_a ceremony_n and_o never_o cure_v of_o they_o retain_v they_o as_o by_o tradition_n to_o this_o day_n and_o it_o be_v know_v how_o tradition_n differ_v about_o easter-day_n and_o the_o millenaries_n opinion_n by_o all_o this_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o most_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n take_v the_o
religion_n which_o they_o hold_v to_o be_v that_o which_o by_o tradition_n the_o church_n receive_v for_o the_o apostle_n and_o therefore_o most_o be_v against_o the_o papacy_n think_v tradition_n be_v against_o it_o and_o the_o tradition_n of_o two_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n especial_o those_o next_o jerusalem_n be_v more_o regardable_a as_o such_o than_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o three_o part_n only_o that_o be_v contrary_a unless_o better_a historical_a proof_n make_v a_o difference_n §_o 29._o 4._o my_o four_o proof_n be_v many_o church_n without_o the_o virge_z of_o the_o roman_a empire_n never_o subject_v themselves_o to_o rome_n and_o many_o not_o of_o many_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n ergo_fw-la there_o be_v visible_a church_n from_o the_o begin_n to_o this_o day_n that_o be_v not_o for_o the_o roman_a vicarship_n to_o this_o he_o say_v if_o i_o can_v prove_v as_o i_o have_v prove_v that_o any_o one_o extra-imperial_a church_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o you_o can_v show_v some_o evident_a reason_n why_o that_o be_v subject_a rather_o than_o all_o the_o rest_n i_o convince_v by_o that_o the_o subjection_n of_o all_o now_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o church_n of_o spain_n france_n britain_n of_o france_n and_o germany_n when_o divide_v from_o the_o roman_a empire_n be_v as_o subject_a as_o the_o rest_n etc._n etc._n answ._n 1._o yes_o and_o much_o more_o rome_n it_o 〈◊〉_d be_v then_o under_o theodorick_n and_o other_o arrian_n dominious_a goth_n and_o those_o ruler_n give_v they_o their_o liberty_n herein_o and_o be_v heretic_n no_o wonder_n if_o the_o bishop_n choose_v to_o continue_v their_o former_a correspondency_n and_o church-order_n to_o strengthen_v themselves_o here_o be_v then_o a_o special_a reason_n why_o rome_n itself_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v so_o voluntary_o continue_v 1._o their_o old_a custom_n when_o under_o the_o empire_n have_v so_o settle_v they_o 2_o their_o strength_n and_o safety_n invite_v they_o 3._o it_o be_v their_o voluntary_a act_n 2._o but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o those_o many_o hundred_o year_n before_o when_o the_o empire_n be_v not_o so_o dismember_v though_o even_o till_o after_o gregory_n day_n a_o 6●…_n the_o britain_n obey_v you_o not_o yet_o i_o tell_v you_o that_o when_o pagan_n or_o arrian_n conquer_v any_o part_n of_o the_o empire_n the_o christian_n will_v still_o be_v as_o much_o under_o the_o old_a christian_a power_n as_o they_o can_v which_o make_v the_o major_a armenia_n when_o subdu●…d_a by_o the_o persian_n crave_v the_o roman_n civil_a government_n and_o revolt_v to_o the_o emperor_n and_o kill_v their_o magistrate_n even_o when_o they_o be_v not_o govern_v by_o the_o pope_n at_o all_o §_o 30._o here_o he_o repeat_v what_o he_o have_v frivolous_o say_v before_o of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a with_o a_o odd_a supposition_n as_o if_o india_n be_v in_o america_n and_o then_o betake_v himself_o to_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o father_n the_o roman_a sovereignty_n but_o with_o such_o vain_a citation_n that_o i_o dare_v not_o tire_v the_o reader_n with_o repeat_v and_o particular_o answer_v they_o 1._o they_o be_v at_o large_a answer_v by_o chamier_n whittaker_n and_o many_o other_o protestant_n long_v ago_o and_o many_o of_o they_o or_o most_o by_o myself_o in_o my_o key_n and_o my_o former_a answer_n to_o he_o 2._o because_o it_o be_v needless_a to_o he_o that_o will_v peruse_v the_o author_n and_o history_n themselves_o and_o useless_a to_o he_o that_o will_v not_o 3._o this_o general_a answer_n be_v sufficient_a 1._o part_v of_o they_o be_v the_o word_n of_o spurious_a book_n as_o st._n denis_n a_o interpolate_a book_n of_o cyprian_a some_o new_a find_v chaldaick_n nicene_n canon_n etc._n etc._n 2._o part_v of_o they_o say_v nothing_o of_o the_o pope_n but_o only_o of_o st._n peter_n as_o be_v the_o first_o of_o the_o apostle_n but_o not_o as_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o rest_n 3._o part_n or_o almost_o all_o of_o they_o speak_v only_o of_o a_o imperial_a primacy_n that_o mention_v the_o pope_n 4._o part_v of_o they_o speak_v only_o of_o a_o honorary_a precellencie_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o church_n there_o 5._o some_o speak_v only_a de_fw-fr facto_fw-la that_o at_o that_o time_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v keep_v out_o the_o arrian_n nestorian_a and_o eutychian_a heresy_n more_o than_o the_o ●…ast_n do_v which_o be_v because_o they_o have_v more_o orthodox_n emperor_n and_o therefore_o that_o those_o sect_n that_o then_o differ_v from_o they_o be_v not_o in_o the_o right_n nor_o in_o the_o church_n 6._o some_o be_v only_o the_o commendation_n of_o eastern_a bishop_n persecute_v by_o the_o arrian_n in_o the_o east_n that_o flee_v to_o rome_n for_o shelter_n 7._o as_o high_a word_n be_v often_o give_v by_o doctor_n and_o council_n themselves_o of_o cyril_n and_o other_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n and_o of_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n antioch_n and_o constantinople_n as_o those_o that_o be_v acquaint_v with_o church-writing_n know_v there_o need_v no_o long_a confutation_n of_o his_o citation_n §_o 31._o my_o five_o proof_n be_v that_o the_o eastern_a church_n within_o the_o empire_n be_v never_o subject_n of_o the_o pope_n he_o deny_v this_o antecedent_n i_o prove_v it_o as_o former_o from_o the_o african_n letter_n to_o celestinus_fw-la and_o the_o word_n of_o basil_n &c_n &c_n so_o far_a 1._o because_o the_o pope_n choose_v not_o the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n antioch_n jerusalem_n or_o constantinople_n nor_o the_o bishop_n under_o they_o 2._o he_o do_v not_o ordain_v they_o nor_o appoint_v any_o vicar_n to_o do_v it_o nor_o do_v they_o hold_v their_o power_n as_o under_o he_o to_o both_o these_o he_o say_v it_o be_v not_o necessary_a etc._n etc._n but_o their_o patriarchal_a power_n be_v from_o he_o answ._n prove_v that_o and_o you_o do_v something_o but_o no_o man_n verse_v in_o church-writing_n can_v believe_v you_o i_o remember_v not_o to_o have_v meet_v with_o any_o learned_a papist_n that_o affirm_v it_o that_o the_o pope_n set_v up_o the_o other_o four_o patriarch_n it_o be_v notorious_a in_o history_n that_o as_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o antioch_n be_v before_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n so_o alexandria_n antioch_n and_o rome_n be_v make_v patriarchates_n together_o and_o no_o one_o of_o they_o make_v the_o rest_n and_o the_o other_o two_o be_v add_v since_o he_o prove_v it_o because_o he_o restore_v and_o depose_v those_o patriarch_n as_o occasion_v require_v answ._n 1._o tell_v this_o to_o those_o that_o never_o read_v such_o write_n prince_n and_o council_n do_v set_v they_o up_o and_o cast_v they_o out_o as_o they_o see_v cause_n it_o be_v tedious_a and_o needless_a to_o any_o but_o the_o ignorant_a to_o recite_v the_o multitude_n of_o instance_n through_o the_o reign_n of_o all_o the_o christian_a emperor_n till_o phocas_n time_n how_o little_a have_v the_o pope_n to_o do_v in_o most_o of_o their_o affair_n 2._o they_o frequent_o set_v up_o and_o depose_v one_o another_o far_o oft_o than_o the_o pope_n do_v any_o do_v that_o prove_v that_o they_o be_v governor_n of_o each_o other_o according_o 3._o council_n then_o judge_v all_o the_o patriarch_n roman_n and_o all_o as_o be_v notorious_a 4._o the_o pope_n sometime_o when_o he_o see_v his_o advantage_n and_o see_v one_o side_n strive_v against_o another_o will_v set_v in_o to_o show_v his_o ambition_n as_o the_o prime_a patriarch_n to_o strengthen_v himself_o by_o such_o as_o need_v he_o and_o usual_o be_v against_o he_o that_o be_v like_a to_o overtop_v he_o as_o neighbour_n prince_n in_o war_n be_v afraid_a of_o the_o strong_a and_o that_o be_v usual_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n 3._o i_o say_v they_o receive_v no_o law_n of_o he_o to_o rule_v by_o he_o reply_v the_o law_n and_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n they_o receive_v and_o those_o be_v confirm_v by_o his_o authority_n answ._n but_o do_v he_o make_v they_o any_o law_n himself_o by_o the_o church_n your_o mean_a council_n and_o those_o make_v law_n for_o he_o therefore_o he_o be_v their_o subject_n he_o have_v but_o a_o voice_n and_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o speaker_n in_o the_o parliament_n some_o council_n you_o confess_v he_o neither_o preside_v in_o nor_o any_o for_o he_o as_o binnius_n confess_v of_o council_n const._n he_o have_v little_a to_o do_v in_o any_o constantinople_n of_o the_o council_n for_o 500_o or_o 600_o year_n less_o by_o far_o than_o the_o other_o patriarch_n 4._o i_o say_v they_o be_v not_o command_v or_o judge_v by_o he_o he_o reply_v i_o have_v evidence_v they_o be_v command_v and_o judge_v by_o he_o answ._n reader_n the_o solution_n of_o such_o historical_a controversy_n be_v by_o read_v the_o history_n themselves_o read_v thorough_o the_o history_n of_o eusebius_n
socrates_n sozomene_n theodoret_n evagrius_n procopius_n victor_n nicephorus_n etc._n etc._n and_o judge_v as_o you_o see_v cause_n especial_o if_o you_o will_v also_o read_v but_o the_o work_n of_o tertullian_n cyprian_n nazianzen_n basil_n hilary_n and_o the_o true_a act_n of_o the_o old_a council_n 5._o i_o add_v the_o equalize_a the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n which_o he_o deny_v against_o the_o express_a word_n of_o the_o council_n i_o may_v add_v the_o after_o prefer_v the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n the_o oft_o contempt_n and_o excommunication_n of_o he_o the_o alter_n of_o church_n power_n ordinary_o by_o the_o emperor_n be_v iustinian_n make_v justiniana_n prima_fw-la and_o secunda_fw-la to_o be_v absolute_a and_o under_o no_o patriarch_n as_o be_v carthage_n and_o say_v pet._n a_o marca_n and_o many_o other_o heraclea_n pontus_n and_o asia_n long_o the_o manage_n of_o many_o council_n without_o he_o and_o pass_v canon_n as_o calce_v 28._o against_o he_o the_o whole_a council_n of_o ephes._n 2._o go_v against_o his_o legate_n and_o that_o under_o a_o most_o pious_a and_o excellent_a prince_n theodos._n 2._o that_o use_v cyril_n and_o make_v he_o precedent_n ephes._n 1._o and_o dioscorous_a ephes._n second_o and_o countenance_n this_o council_n against_o the_o pope_n when_o zeno_n carry_v on_o his_o henoticon_n and_o anastasius_n his_o reconciliation_n how_o little_a do_v he_o or_o any_o of_o the_o eastern_a church_n stick_v at_o the_o pope_n dissent_n no_o nor_o justinian_n when_o he_o turn_v to_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o apththartodocitae_fw-la and_o when_o he_o drag_v vigilius_n as_o some_o historian_n say_v with_o a_o rope_n instance_n may_v be_v multiply_v §_o 32._o my_o 6_o proof_n of_o the_o novelty_n of_o the_o papal_a sovereignty_n be_v from_o the_o testimony_n of_o their_o own_o great_a bishop_n where_o i_o cite_v greg._n one_a his_o word_n so_o plain_a and_o large_a against_o a_o universal_a bishop_n or_o pastor_n as_o plain_a can_v scarce_o be_v speak_v and_o answer_v bellarmine_n word_n against_o it_o and_o i_o shall_v take_v the_o impartial_a reader_n to_o need_v no_o more_o answer_n to_o w_n i._n than_o even_o to_o read_v the_o word_n of_o gregory_n themselves_o only_o note_v that_o this_o john_n of_o constantinople_n that_o claim_v the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n be_v a_o man_n of_o more_o than_o ordinary_a mortification_n and_o contempt_n of_o worldly_a thing_n for_o his_o poverty_n and_o great_a fast_v call_v johannes_n jejunus_fw-la and_o therefore_o not_o like_a to_o do_v it_o out_o of_o any_o extraordinary_a worldliness_n and_o pride_n and_o also_o that_o gregory_n be_v of_o so_o little_a power_n himself_o be_v then_o out_o of_o the_o empire_n under_o other_o power_n for_o the_o most_o part_n that_o he_o do_v not_o blame_v john_n as_o for_o claim_v that_o which_o he_o have_v right_a to_o but_o that_o which_o no_o bishop_n at_o all_o have_v right_o to_o the_o case_n be_v most_o plain_a §_o 33._o my_o seven_o proof_n be_v the_o papist_n themselves_o confess_v that_o multitude_n of_o christian_n if_o not_o most_o by_o far_o have_v be_v the_o opposer_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o none_o of_o his_o subject_n therefore_o there_o have_v be_v visible_a church_n of_o such_o to_o this_o he_o grant_v the_o antecedent_n of_o christian_n net_n univocal_o so_o call_v but_o of_o no_o other_o answ._n here_o he_o intimate_v that_o most_o of_o the_o profess_a christian_n of_o the_o world_n be_v not_o univocal_o christian_n by_o profession_n but_o equivocal_o only_a and_o who_o will_v easy_o believe_v such_o teacher_n as_o unchristen_v most_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n any_o sect_n may_v take_v that_o course_n their_o sense_n be_v this_o none_o be_v christian_n indeed_o but_o only_o those_o that_o be_v subject_n to_o the_o pope_n therefore_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v his_o subject_n just_o so_o the_o donatist_n and_o some_o foreign_a anabaptist_n take_v it_o but_o for_o grant_v that_o none_o be_v christian_n but_o those_o that_o be_v baptise_a at_o age_n and_o then_o the_o inference_n will_v be_v plausible_a that_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v against_o infant-baptism_n §_o 34._o to_o ae●…eas_n silvius_n pope_n pius_n 2d_o word_n that_o small_a regard_n be_v have_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n before_o the_o nicene_n council_n he_o reply_v that_o he_o mean_v not_o so_o small_a as_o not_o to_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o other_o church_n else_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a have_v introduce_v a_o new_a government_n answ._n his_o word_n be_v plain_a and_o all_o history_n of_o those_o time_n confirm_v they_o no_o one_o church_n before_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a have_v any_o government_n over_o other_o but_o what_o be_v for_o mere_a concord_n by_o free_a consent_n at_o least_o before_o constantine_n give_v it_o they_o and_o in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a there_o be_v not_o a_o word_n that_o intimate_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v ruler_n of_o all_o the_o world_n of_o christian_n but_o his_o power_n be_v mention_v as_o limit_v to_o his_o precinct_n and_o the_o like_v give_v to_o alexandria_n yet_o innovation_n in_o give_v power_n to_o patriarch_n be_v no_o wonder_n in_o council_n how_o else_o come_v constantinople_n and_o jerusalem_n to_o be_v patriarch_n be_v it_o not_o by_o innovation_n §_o 34._o next_o he_o say_v i_o cite_v goldastus_n but_o where_o the_o lord_n know_v answ._n i_o perceive_v the_o man_n be_v a_o stranger_n to_o goldastus_n who_o have_v gather_v a_o multitude_n of_o old_a writer_n against_o the_o papacy_n for_o prince_n right_n and_o bind_v they_o in_o many_o great_a volume_n de_fw-fr monarchia_fw-la &_o constitut._n imperial_a i_o cite_v no_o particular_a word_n but_o all_o these_o great_a volume_n of_o many_o author_n of_o those_o time_n show_v the_o opposition_n to_o papal_a claim_n §_o 35._o his_o say_n that_o the_o schismatical_a greek_n be_v not_o univocal_a christian_n be_v no_o more_o regardable_a than_o the_o greek_n anathematise_v papist_n §_o 36._o my_o plain_a testimony_n of_o their_o reynerius_n armeniorum_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la &_o aethiopum_fw-la &_o induorum_fw-la &_o caeterae_fw-la quas_fw-la apostoli_fw-la converterunt_fw-la non_fw-la subsunt_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la romanae_fw-la he_o first_o cavil_v at_o my_o saying_n be_v not_o under_o instead_o of_o be_v not_o not_o see_v that_o i_o only_o recite_v the_o assertion_n as_o utter_v by_o reynerius_n so_o long_o ago_o and_o must_v i_o not_o say_v that_o he_o say_v than_o they_o be_v not_o under_o if_o he_o so_o long_o ago_o say_v they_o be_v not_o 2._o but_o he_o will_v persuade_v the_o credulous_a that_o this_o speak_v of_o they_o but_o as_o schismatic_n as_o alexandria_n antioch_n constantinople_n be_v not_o now_o under_o rome_n but_o have_v be_v answ_n but_o those_o that_o will_v be_v satisfy_v with_o force_a abuse_n of_o word_n may_v believe_v any_o thing_n that_o a_o priest_n will_v say_v the_o context_n confute_v you_o you_o do_v not_o pretend_v that_o india_n turn_v from_o you_o and_o be_v under_o you_o by_o the_o church_n plant_v by_o the_o apostle_n he_o plain_o mean_v those_o without_o the_o empire_n as_o be_v none_o of_o the_o province_n put_v under_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n nor_o of_o old_a claim_v by_o the_o pope_n §_o 37._o i_o cite_v melch._n canus_n word_n loc._n l._n 6._o c._n 7._o fol._n 201._o not_o only_o the_o greek_n but_o almost_o all_o or_o most_o of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n have_v vehement_o seek_v to_o destroy_v the_o privilege_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o indeed_o they_o have_v on_o their_o side_n both_o the_o arm_n of_o emperor_n and_o the_o great_a number_n of_o church_n and_o yet_o they_o can_v never_o prevail_v to_o abrogate_v the_o power_n of_o the_o one_o roman_a pope_n to_o this_o he_o say_v that_o 1._o canus_n speak_v of_o different_a time_n not_o conjunct_o 2._o and_o he_o take_v they_o not_o for_o univocal_a christian_n and_o here_o he_o find_v a_o root_n of_o rebellion_n q._n d._n most_o of_o the_o country_n rebel_v against_o the_o king_n ergo_fw-la he_o have_v no_o authority_n over_o they_o answ._n our_o question_n here_o be_v only_o of_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n whether_o de_fw-fr facto_fw-la most_o of_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n have_v not_o be_v against_o the_o papacy_n this_o canus_n assert_v therefore_o i_o seek_v no_o more_o and_o when_o you_o have_v prove_v they_o no_o christian_n or_o rebel_n i_o shall_v consider_v your_o proof_n 2._o have_v he_o mean_v only_o the_o most_o of_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n per_fw-la vice_n it_o have_v signify_v nothing_o to_o his_o purpose_n for_o that_o have_v be_v no_o strength_n but_o may_v have_v be_v some_o inconsiderable_a town_n at_o a_o time_n 3._o but_o that_o all_o church-history_n may_v help_v we_o better_a to_o understand_v his_o word_n that_o tell_v we_o oft_o
it_o be_v at_o once_o special_o when_o binnius_n say_v that_o at_o eph._n 2._o council_n only_a peter_n ship_n escape_v drown_v as_o to_o his_o cavil_v at_o my_o translation_n whether_o ab_fw-la aliis_fw-la plerisque_fw-la totius_fw-la orbis_fw-la episcopis_fw-la be_v not_o to_o be_v translate_v if_o not_o almost_o all_o the_o rest_n at_o least_o most_o of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n rather_o than_o very_o many_o other_o i_o leave_v to_o the_o ordinary_a reader_n judgement_n and_o as_o for_o either_o canus_n or_o his_o own_o say_n that_o all_o these_o the_o greek_n and_o most_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n the_o great_a number_n of_o church_n and_o the_o arm_a emperor_n be_v all_o schismatic_n heretic_n and_o no_o christian_n but_o equivocal_o it_o be_v no_o weak_a proof_n of_o the_o falseness_n of_o their_o cause_n and_o tyranny_n that_o can_v stand_v without_o unchristen_v most_o of_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n in_o the_o world_n with_o such_o emperor_n canus_n his_o confession_n of_o the_o historical_a truth_n may_v be_v plead_v by_o i_o while_o i_o hate_v their_o rob_v christ_n of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o his_o church_n because_o they_o be_v not_o the_o pope_n §_o 38._o my_o eight_o proof_n of_o the_o novelty_n of_o the_o papal_a sovereignty_n be_v from_o historical_a testimony_n that_o the_o papal_a sovereignty_n be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o church_n faith_n nor_o own_a by_o the_o ancient_n this_o be_v do_v at_o large_a by_o bloudel_n de_fw-fr primatu_fw-la and_o pet._n moulin_n de_fw-fr novitate_fw-la papismi_fw-la usher_n field_n of_o the_o church_n lib._n 5._o chaucer_n whittaker_n io._n white_a and_o many_o other_o i_o instance_a only_o in_o many_o historian_n regino_n herman_n contract_n marian_n scotus_n beneventus_fw-la de_fw-fr rambaldis_n and_o other_o that_o say_v phocas_n first_o constitute_v say_v one_o or_o boniface_n obtain_v of_o phocas_n say_v other_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o church_n to_o this_o 1._o he_o think_v i_o have_v forget_v my_o first_o thesis_n because_o he_o forget_v that_o when_o i_o have_v prove_v by_o three_o argument_n my_o thesis_n in_o the_o four_o to_o satisfy_v their_o importunity_n i_o prove_v it_o with_o the_o addition_n that_o there_o have_v be_v a_o christian_a church_n still_o visible_a that_o obey_v not_o the_o pope_n and_o so_o add_v ten_o more_o argument_n to_o prove_v this_o negative_a or_o exclusive_a part_n after_o he_o come_v to_o this_o again_o and_o will_v have_v ut_fw-la caput_fw-la esset_fw-la to_o be_v no_o more_o than_o a_o acknowledgement_n of_o a_o controvert_v title_n but_o at_o least_o the_o primus_fw-la constituit_fw-la confute_v that_o and_o it_o be_v not_o ut_fw-la diceretur_fw-la haberetur_fw-la or_o denuò_fw-la esset_fw-la he_o cit_v platina_n as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o wonder_n for_o the_o pope_n household_n servant_n to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v his_o right_n 2._o but_o i_o special_o note_v that_o both_o what_o be_v say_v of_o phocas_n and_o by_o he_o of_o justinian_n gratian_n etc._n etc._n who_o constitute_v and_o command_v this_o primacy_n and_o subjection_n to_o it_o show_v that_o it_o be_v but_o imperial_a as_o to_o bound_n and_o authority_n i_o before_o mention_v suarez_n himself_o in_o his_o excellent_a book_n de_fw-fr legibus_fw-la say_v that_o god_n have_v make_v no_o law_n of_o church-policy_n and_o if_o so_o not_o of_o the_o papacy_n §_o 39_o i_o note_v their_o novelty_n out_o of_o platina_n in_o gregor_n say_n what_o shall_v i_o say_v more_o of_o this_o holy_a man_n who_o whole_a institution_n of_o the_o church-office_n special_o the_o old_a one_o be_v invent_v and_o approve_v by_o he_o which_o order_n i_o will_v we_o do_v follow_v then_o learned_a man_n will_v not_o at_o this_o day_n abhor_v the_o read_n of_o the_o office_n hence_o i_o note_v 1._o that_o all_o their_o church-office_n be_v new_a be_v gregory_n invention_n though_o no_o doubt_n much_o of_o the_o matter_n have_v be_v in_o use_n before_o that_o form_n 2._o therefore_o the_o maintainer_n of_o tradition_n can_v prove_v that_o because_o they_o thus_o worship_n god_n now_o therefore_o they_o always_o do_v so_o 3._o gregory_n invent_v office_n hardly_o receive_v in_o spain_n be_v so_o alter_v in_o platina_n time_n that_o learned_a man_n abhor_v the_o read_n of_o it_o 4._o why_o may_v they_o not_o corrupt_a church-government_n where_o ambition_n have_v a_o thousand_o time_n great_a bait_n as_o well_o as_o church-office_n this_o be_v their_o antiquity_n and_o constancy_n this_o w._n i._o think_v meet_v in_o silence_n to_o pass_v by_o §_o 40._o my_o nine_o proof_n of_o the_o novelty_n of_o the_o papal_a sovereignty_n be_v if_o the_o generality_n of_o christian_n in_o the_o first_o age_n and_o many_o if_o not_o most_o in_o the_o latter_a age_n have_v be_v free_a from_o the_o essential_o of_o the_o papist_n faith_n than_o their_o faith_n have_v have_v no_o successive_a visible_a church_n profess_v it_o in_o all_o age_n but_o the_o christian_n that_o be_v against_o it_o have_v be_v visible_a but_o the_o antecedent_n be_v true_a the_o antecedent_n i_o prove_v in_o twelve_o instance_n to_o this_o he_o say_v it_o follow_v not_o that_o though_o our_o church_n as_o papal_a have_v no_o successive_a visibility_n the_o church_n whereof_o the_o protestant_n be_v member_n have_v ever_o since_o christ_n time_n on_o earth_n a_o successive_a visibility_n when_o you_o have_v prove_v this_o consequence_n i_o oblige_v myself_o to_o answer_v your_o instance_n and_o so_o he_o dare_v not_o meddle_v with_o that_o matter_n but_o put_v it_o off_o answ._n reader_n see_v here_o what_o a_o issue_n our_o dispute_n be_v bring_v to_o can_v you_o wish_v a_o plain_a i_o prove_v that_o our_o religion_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o christianity_n our_o church_n have_v be_v still_o visible_a because_o it_o be_v confess_v that_o the_o christian_a church_n have_v be_v still_o visible_a but_o the_o papist_n must_v have_v we_o prove_v also_o that_o our_o church-hath_a be_v still_o visible_a as_o without_o popery_n i_o now_o prove_v popery_n a_o novelty_n and_o do_v not_o that_o then_o full_o prove_v my_o consequence_n that_o the_o christian_a church_n be_v visible_a without_o it_o and_o i_o prove_v that_o this_o novelty_n of_o popery_n be_v yet_o receive_v but_o by_o the_o three_o part_n of_o christian_n of_o who_o i_o be_o persuade_v ten_o to_o one_o be_v either_o compel_v to_o profess_v what_o they_o believe_v not_o or_o understand_v it_o not_o therefore_o the_o christian_a church_n be_v once_o whole_o and_o be_v yet_o most_o without_o popery_n i_o know_v not_o when_o a_o cause_n be_v give_v up_o if_o here_o he_o give_v not_o up_o his_o cause_n §_o 41._o twelve_o new_a article_n of_o the_o papal_a faith_n i_o name_v 1._o that_o the_o pope_n be_v above_o a●…_n general_n council_n decree_v at_o late_a and_o florence_n 2._o contrary_o that_o the_o council_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n and_o may_v judge_v he_o etc._n etc._n decree_v at_o basil_n and_o constance_n true_a before_o as_o a_o point_n of_o humane_a order_n but_o not_o make_v ever_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n 3._o that_o the_o pope_n may_v depose_v prince_n and_o give_v their_o dominion_n to_o other_o if_o they_o exterminate_v not_o all_o their_o subject_n that_o deny_v transubstantiation_n decree_v at_o late_a sub_fw-la innoc._n 3._o 4._o that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n together_o with_o the_o soul_n and_o divinity_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v true_o and_o real_o and_o substantial_o in_o the_o eucharist_n and_o that_o there_o be_v a_o change_n of_o the_o whole_a substance_n of_o bread_n into_o the_o body_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a substance_n of_o wine_n into_o the_o blood_n which_o they_o call_v transubstantiation_n decree_v at_o trent_n and_o prove_v new_a by_o ed._n albertinus_n bishop_n cousin_n history_n of_o trans_fw-la and_o by_o myself_o 5._o that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v right_o give_v and_o take_v under_o one_o kind_n without_o the_o cup_n decree_v at_o constance_n and_o trent_n 6._o that_o we_o must_v never_o take_v and_o interpret_v scripture_n but_o according_a to_o the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o the_o father_n see_v the_o trent-oath_n whereas_o 1._o we_o have_v no_o certainty_n who_o to_o take_v for_o father_n a_o great_a part_n be_v call_v both_o father_n and_o heretic_n by_o the_o papist_n 2._o and_o they_o great_o disagree_v among_o themselves_o 3._o and_o have_v not_o unanimous_o give_v we_o any_o sense_n at_o all_o of_o a_o quarter_n of_o the_o bible_n if_o of_o the_o hundred_o part_n 7._o that_o there_o be_v a_o purgatory_n and_o that_o the_o soul_n there_o detain_v be_v holpen_v by_o the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o faithful_a 8._o that_o the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o mother_n and_o mistress_n of_o all_o church_n and_o